Food: A Cultural Culinary History

Topic
Better Living
“Pure intellectual stimulation that can be popped into
the [audio or video player] anytime.”
—Harvard Magazine
Food: A Cultural Culinary History
“Passionate, erudite, living legend lecturers. Academia’s
best lecturers are being captured on tape.”
—The Los Angeles Times
“A serious force in American education.”
—The Wall Street Journal
Professor Ken Albala is Professor of History at the University
of the Pacific in Stockton, California, where he teaches food
history and the history of early modern Europe. He has an
M.A. in History from Yale University and a Ph.D. in History
from Columbia University. Professor Albala is the author or
editor of numerous books on food and coeditor of the journal
Food, Culture & Society. His textbook Three World Cuisines:
Italian, Mexican, Chinese won the 2013 Gourmand World
Cookbook Award for Best Foreign Cuisine Book in the World.
Professor Photo: © Jeff Mauritzen - inPhotograph.com.
Cover Image: © Erich Lessing/Art Resource, NY.
Course No. 9180 © 2013 The Teaching Company.
PB9180A
Guidebook
THE GREAT COURSES ®
Corporate Headquarters
4840 Westfields Boulevard, Suite 500
Chantilly, VA 20151-2299
USA
Phone: 1-800-832-2412
www.thegreatcourses.com
Subtopic
Food & Wine
Food: A Cultural
Culinary History
Course Guidebook
Professor Ken Albala
University of the Pacific
PUBLISHED BY:
THE GREAT COURSES
Corporate Headquarters
4840 Westfields Boulevard, Suite 500
Chantilly, Virginia 20151-2299
Phone: 1-800-832-2412
Fax: 703-378-3819
www.thegreatcourses.com
Copyright © The Teaching Company, 2013
Printed in the United States of America
This book is in copyright. All rights reserved.
Without limiting the rights under copyright reserved above,
no part of this publication may be reproduced, stored in
or introduced into a retrieval system, or transmitted,
in any form, or by any means
(electronic, mechanical, photocopying, recording, or otherwise),
without the prior written permission of
The Teaching Company.
Ken Albala, Ph.D.
Professor of History
University of the Pacific
P
rofessor Ken Albala is Professor of History
at the University of the Pacific in Stockton,
California, where he has been teaching food
history and the history of early modern Europe for
the past 20 years. In 2009, he won the Faye and
Alex G. Spanos Distinguished Teaching Award
at the University of the Pacific. He is also a Visiting Professor at Boston
University, where he teaches an advanced food history course in the
gastronomy program. He has a B.A. in European Studies from The George
Washington University, an M.A. in History from Yale University, and a
Ph.D. in History from Columbia University.
Professor Albala is the author or editor of 16 books on food, including Eating
Right in the Renaissance; Food in Early Modern Europe; Cooking in Europe,
1250–1650; The Banquet: Dining in the Great Courts of Late Renaissance
Europe; Beans: A History (winner of the 2008 International Association of
Culinary Professionals Jane Grigson Award); and Pancake: A Global History.
He also has coedited The Business of Food: Encyclopedia of the Food and
Drink Industries, Human Cuisine, and two other collections: Food and Faith
in Christian Culture and A Cultural History of Food in the Renaissance.
Professor Albala was editor of three food series for Greenwood Press
with 30 volumes in print, and his four-volume Food Cultures of the World
Encyclopedia was published in 2011. He is also coeditor of the journal Food,
Culture & Society and general editor of the series AltaMira Studies in Food
and Gastronomy, for which he has written a textbook entitled Three World
Cuisines: Italian, Mexican, Chinese, which won the 2013 Gourmand World
Cookbook Award for Best Foreign Cuisine Book in the World.
Professor Albala is currently researching a history of theological
controversies surrounding fasting in the Reformation era. Recently, he
i
coauthored a cookbook, The Lost Art of Real Cooking, and its sequel, The
Lost Arts of Hearth and Home, a handbook of kitchen and home projects. ■
ii
Table of Contents
INTRODUCTION
Professor Biography ............................................................................i
Course Scope .....................................................................................1
LECTURE GUIDES
LECTURE 1
Hunting, Gathering, and Stone Age Cooking......................................4
LECTURE 2
What Early Agriculturalists Ate..........................................................12
LECTURE 3
Egypt and the Gift of the Nile............................................................20
LECTURE 4
Ancient Judea—From Eden to Kosher Laws....................................28
LECTURE 5
Classical Greece—Wine, Olive Oil, and Trade .................................36
LECTURE 6
The Alexandrian Exchange and the Four Humors............................43
LECTURE 7
Ancient India—Sacred Cows and Ayurveda .....................................50
LECTURE 8
Yin and Yang of Classical Chinese Cuisine ......................................57
LECTURE 9
Dining in Republican and Imperial Rome .........................................65
LECTURE 10
Early Christianity—Food Rituals and Asceticism ..............................72
iii
Table of Contents
LECTURE 11
Europe’s Dark Ages and Charlemagne ............................................78
LECTURE 12
Islam—A Thousand and One Nights of Cooking ..............................85
LECTURE 13
Carnival in the High Middle Ages......................................................92
LECTURE 14
International Gothic Cuisine .............................................................99
LECTURE 15
A Renaissance in the Kitchen .........................................................106
LECTURE 16
Aztecs and the Roots of Mexican Cooking ..................................... 113
LECTURE 17
1492—Globalization and Fusion Cuisines......................................120
LECTURE 18
16th-Century Manners and Reformation Diets ................................127
LECTURE 19
Papal Rome and the Spanish Golden Age .....................................134
LECTURE 20
The Birth of French Haute Cuisine .................................................143
LECTURE 21
Elizabethan England, Puritans, Country Food................................150
LECTURE 22
Dutch Treat—Coffee, Tea, Sugar, Tobacco ....................................158
LECTURE 23
African and Aboriginal Cuisines ......................................................165
iv
Table of Contents
LECTURE 24
Edo, Japan—Samurai Dining and Zen Aesthetics..........................172
LECTURE 25
Colonial Cookery in North America.................................................178
LECTURE 26
Eating in the Early Industrial Revolution .........................................185
LECTURE 27
Romantics, Vegetarians, Utopians .................................................192
LECTURE 28
First Restaurants, Chefs, and Gastronomy ....................................199
LECTURE 29
Big Business and the Homogenization of Food..............................206
LECTURE 30
Food Imperialism around the World ...............................................213
LECTURE 31
Immigrant Cuisines and Ethnic Restaurants ..................................220
LECTURE 32
War, Nutritionism, and the Great Depression .................................227
LECTURE 33
World War II and the Advent of Fast Food......................................234
LECTURE 34
Counterculture—From Hippies to Foodies .....................................241
LECTURE 35
Science of New Dishes and New Organisms .................................248
LECTURE 36
The Past as Prologue? ...................................................................255
v
Table of Contents
SUPPLEMENTAL MATERIAL
Bibliography ....................................................................................261
vi
Food: A Cultural Culinary History
Scope:
T
his course explores the history of how humans have produced,
cooked, and consumed food—from the earliest hunting-and-gathering
societies to the present. This course examines how civilizations and
their foodways have been shaped by geography, native flora and fauna, and
technological innovations. Feeding people has always been the primary
concern of our species, and more than any other factor, finding, growing, and
trading food products has been the prime catalyst in human history. Think,
for example, how the desire for spices in the Middle Ages led directly to the
discovery of the New World.
The scope of this course is global, covering civilizations of Asia, America,
Africa, and Europe and how cultures in each of these continents domesticated
unique staples that literally enabled these civilizations to expand and flourish.
The course also covers marginalized and colonized cultures that were
dominated largely to feed or entice the palates of the great. A major theme
of the course is the process of globalization, imperialism, and the growth of
capitalist enterprise at the cost of indigenous cultures and traditional farming
practices and how these processes were shaped by trade in food.
Beyond the larger economic and social issues, the course will also cover the
culture of food, why humans made the food choices they have, and what
their food practices tell us about them and their world. In other words, food
practices will be used as a window for viewing culture as a whole—just as
one might study painting or literature. Foodways reveal much more because
not only must all humans eat, but they also all make conscious choices about
food within a cultural milieu. These choices not only reveal who they are
and where they fit in socially, but also often their political, religious, and
philosophical bend. By exploring what humans have thought and written
about food, you will hopefully be able to experience human history as it
becomes alive and direct in a way that the stories of great kings and epic
battles sometimes cannot.
1
This course will examine in detail cookbooks, culinary literature, and dietary
and religious texts—all of which reveal the preoccupations and predilections
of the past. The course will also examine why different people make different
food choices, why they sometimes go to extraordinary lengths to find rare or
exotic items while refusing to eat foods that are cheap and plentiful, why
individuals from certain social classes will avoid or esteem particular foods,
and in general how food is the most important factor of self-definition. In
other words, food helps define who the individual is; where he or she fits
in society; and how the culture, nationality, or ethnicity he or she espouses
expresses itself through food and cuisine. Of course, what a particular food
or dish may mean differs dramatically from place to place and time to time,
from generation to generation, and even in the mind of one individual
depending on the context. This course will help you see not only how and
why other cultures shape what people eat, but also how your choices are
ultimately determined by our culture and are often equally bizarre and
arbitrary to outsiders, especially when it comes to food taboos.
Scope
Because this is a history course, it will examine the way that the interaction,
destruction, transformation, and assimilation of cultures are all hastened by
the human drive to feed and titillate the gullet. For example, the demand
for sugar and spices in the late Middle Ages was not only the impetus for
discovering the New World, but it also transformed the economy of both
the Old World and the New World and involved massive migrations, the
spread of human pathogens, and the biological interaction of flora, fauna,
and humans among several continents. All of this changed the world—so
that Europeans could have sugar in their tea.
The entire course is also accompanied by hands-on activities so that you
can not only read about food in the past in the lecture guides, but you can
also have some fun in the kitchen exploring the past and even tasting it if
you so desire. The activities are designed to bring the lectures alive—not
only by having you experience the physical act of cooking as it was done in
the past, but also by having you understand directly the taste preferences of
our forebears. Of course, using equipment that would have been used in the
past helps you get much closer, as does using exactly the ingredients they
would have used, but there is no reason not to try these activities in your
modern kitchen as well. Some of these activities involve recipes that were
2
taken directly from historic cookbooks. Reconstructions are given when
recipes were not available or have never been translated. Others are simply
culinary exercises or tastings. They are all designed to expand your palate, to
explore the past—just as you might a new, exotic cuisine you have recently
discovered. All recipes have either been adapted from the original or are
direct translations from the original languages. ■
3
Hunting, Gathering, and Stone Age Cooking
Lecture 1
T
Lecture 1: Hunting, Gathering, and Stone Age Cooking
hroughout this course, you will analyze what people ate and why, how
they made the best of their material resources, which technologies
they used to transform food, and most importantly, what ideas they
had about food. By the end of the course, your relationship to the food
you eat—and to human history as a whole—may be quite different and,
hopefully, far richer. This lecture begins at the very beginning, even before
human history, with a discussion of food in prehistoric times.
Prehistoric Diets
 Looking at the diet of prehistoric people raises fundamental
questions about what we were meant to eat according to nature. This
is a question that most civilizations at one point or another address:
Are we primarily sharp-toothed carnivores or benign vegetarians?
4

It had long been assumed that our prehistoric forebears were
primarily hunters, judging from archaeological remains of animal
bones and arrow tips and pictures of game depicted on cave walls.
However, from the emergence of Homo sapiens about 200,000
years ago to only about 10,000 years ago—the vast majority
of our time on this planet—humans got their food by gathering
and hunting.

Humans are omnivores—and always have been. Sophisticated
methods of analyzing tissue remains and fossilized bits of food
are now giving us a more complete image of the prehistoric diet,
and the surprise is that prehistoric humans were well fed; they ate
everything and anything that offered nutritional value, including
meat of animals large and small, insects, fish, wild greens, nuts,
berries, and seeds.

Other evidence is provided by plant and animal remains left at
archaeological sites, including bits of bones, heaps of shells, and
traces of bug exoskeletons. When you find a huge pile of bones
of a particular species that are burned, broken, and discarded in a
heap, it’s good evidence that it was a regular part of the diet and
that hunters brought back their kill to a central place to butcher it
and probably shared it communally.

Wall paintings, such as those in Lascaux in France and Altamira
in Spain, reveal which species were hunted—some of which are
now extinct, including woolly mammoths, or no longer live in the
region because they were overhunted, or the climate changed so
dramatically that they couldn’t survive or feed themselves.

Anthropologists also infer information about prehistoric diets and
cooking methods by comparing modern-day peoples still living
in traditional ways, including Amazonian tribes and aboriginal
Australians, and drawing inferences about prehistoric peoples
from them.
Human Evolution
 There have been a lot of recent discoveries in paleontology
regarding human evolution. The story of how we became human
is all about food: hunting, processing ingredients, and cooking.
The story of human evolution itself is largely a story of changes
triggered by different modes of food processing.

The last common ancestor of humans and apes seems to have lived
between 5 and 10 million years ago. Both were omnivores, but a
parting of the ways in the quest for food, in a sense, made us what
we are. Ardipithecus ramidus, discovered in 1994, is the oldest
hominid. Ardipithecus ramidus lived about 5 million years ago, was
about four feet tall, walked upright, and lived in forests.

Bipedalism, the fact that hominids walk on two feet, is thought
to be the result of the need to move faster and see farther when
hominids began to move onto the plains and catch larger animals or
escape from predators. In other words, how we ate (on the plains)
directly drove evolution. Shorter hominids that walked with their
5
6

The first cultural changes related to food appeared about 2.5 to
1.5 million years ago with Homo habilis, or “handy man.” He was
found with tools around him, such as flaked stones for cutting.
Homo habilis had a bigger brain, and the Broca’s area of the brain
was larger, so he probably could speak a bit, too.

Homo habilis probably made the transition from a diet comprised
primarily of unprocessed plant foods to a greater amount of meat in
the Pleistocene era, about 1.5 million years ago. Meat was acquired
just as often by scavenging
as hunting.

Homo erectus lived from 1.8
million to 300,000 years ago
and is found outside Africa and
in Europe. Homo erectus were
probably better walkers than
we are; our pelvises are much
wider to allow for the birth of
infants with big brains. About
700,000 years ago, there’s
direct evidence of hunting.
Most
importantly,
Homo
erectus probably used fire.

Recently, Richard Wrangham
has made the argument that Homo erectus is perhaps an
Homo erectus also cooked food, ancestor of modern humans.
and this made available many
more nutrients, which allowed us to spend less energy digesting
raw food and more energy developing greater brain capacity. In
other words, we evolved because we cooked food.
© Dorling Kindersley RF/Thinkstock.
Lecture 1: Hunting, Gathering, and Stone Age Cooking
knuckles on the ground couldn’t compete and, therefore, died off.
Meanwhile, apes stayed in forests.

Archaic forms of Homo sapiens first appeared about 500,000 years
ago. For example, Neanderthals lived from 320,000 to 30,000 years
ago. They are closely related to us—so close that we could produce
offspring with them.

The brains of Neanderthals were a little bigger than ours. They were
stout but short (about 5’ 6’’) with a solid build, and they adapted
to living in colder climate of the last major ice age. They used a
wide variety of tools and weapons. They were hunters of big game,
and most importantly, Neanderthals cooked their food—from about
250,000 years ago—and show the oldest undeniable evidence of
widespread cooking of food, which is about 125,000 years old.

Homo sapiens sapiens only appeared 120,000 years ago; we lived
at the same time as Neanderthals. About 40,000 years ago, CroMagnon man was making tools for sewing clothes, sculpting,
decorating beads and ivory carvings, clay figures, instruments, and
cave paintings. It’s only here that there’s evidence of sophisticated
hunting strategies. They also took on dangerous animals, such as
wild boar and woolly mammoths.

When we get to 30,000 B.C., or the Paleolithic Period (Old
Stone Age), we are the only hominid left. Presumably, our
advanced organizational skills gave us a distinct advantage over
the Neanderthals, and it may have been partly the advantage of
sophisticated cooking and socializing.
Hunting-Gathering Life
 Ninety percent of humans who have ever lived were gatherers
and hunters. Although hunter-gatherers were more closely tied to
the larger ecosystem along with other animals, it would be wrong
to assume that they lived in some kind of primeval harmony with
nature. They destroyed fields through burning, hunted animals to
extinction, and caused pollution.

Given the extremely low population density, however, they didn’t
do that much damage. About a million years ago, there were about
7
Lecture 1: Hunting, Gathering, and Stone Age Cooking
half a million hominids in existence; by 30,000 years ago, there
were about three million. Despite the smaller populations, huntergatherers were on the whole better nourished, had fewer diseases,
and probably had a lot more spare time than their agriculturalpastoral descendants.
8

Regarding free time, a hunting-gathering economy provides about
10,000 to 15,000 calories per hour of labor. Subsistence farmers,
growing mostly grain, get between 3,000 and 5,000. You have to
work much harder when farming—and you have to eat a lot more
vegetables to be properly nourished.

To capture or kill an animal requires a high level of sophistication.
Making such tools as bows and arrows are skills that are passed
down from generation to generation. Presumably, these skills give
some peoples an evolutionary advantage over others, and this
may be why we replaced Neanderthals. Sophisticated toolmakers
survive and pass on their genes at a greater rate.

It is generally believed that there was a gender-specific division
of labor among these people—as there often is among nomadic
hunter-gatherers today. Men went out to hunt while women did the
gathering because they were also involved with child rearing.

Cooking was essential to our becoming human and was the first
major food revolution. Cooking involves the development of
ritual, and a more complex social organization results from regular
cooking with fire. Many foods, including meat, starches, and wild
grasses, were made more digestible (or digestible for the first time)
with the advent of cooking with fire. Cooking also kills pathogens
in food, so those who cooked survived at greater rates than those
who didn’t—a real evolutionary advantage over all other animals.

In fact, even before pottery and metallurgy, a core repertoire of
cooking methods had already come into use.
○ Roasting.
○ Using a hot stone as a griddle.
○ Filling a pit with stones and covering it with leaves and earth.
○ Filling a basket with water and hot stones.
○ Stretching skin with water over a fire.
○ Filling a stone-lined pit (below the water table) with water and
hot rocks or smeared with clay and fired.
○ Stuffing entrails with other foods.
○ Placing food on a wooden rack over hot coals in a pit (barbequing).

What was eaten depends entirely on the region, but there are some
generalizations that can be made. The first major distinction is
between those living near water and those inland in open grasslands,
where there are animals in herds. The inland people generally have
to move farther and more frequently than the coastal people.

Another generalization is that colder arctic and more northern
regions tend to have a narrower diet, like Eskimos on seals and fish.
In more tropical regions, the diet is much more varied with a greater
mix of vegetables, fruits, and meats.

Bigger jaws holding bigger muscles suggest rougher and rawer
food; smaller jaws of more recent humans suggest softer and
cooked food. There are more cavities, too, with the agriculturalist’s
diet of starches and sugars. Hunter-gatherers have more worn front
teeth and canines; agriculturalists’ molars wear down more quickly.

For more than 100,000 years, virtually everything humans ate was
wild. The animal species they ate were leaner, and the roots and
vegetables were stronger tasting, with all the fiber and roughage
intact. They also ate a lot of nuts and berries, which many people
today claim are very good for your health.
9
Suggested Reading
Anderson, Everyone Eats.
Fraser, Empires of Food.
Higman, How Food Made History.
Jones, Feast.
Montanari, Food Is Culture.
Wrangham, Catching Fire.
Lecture 1: Hunting, Gathering, and Stone Age Cooking
Culinary Activity
Boiling Water in a Paper Bag
Here’s an interesting exercise that simply shows how one can cook in an
animal skin. Take a large paper shopping bag, and cut out an eight-by-eightinch square with no seams. (Seams would cause it to leak.) Fold it in half
diagonally once into a triangle, and then fold it again in half into a smaller
triangle. Open it up so that you have a cone, and tape or staple the ends so
that it doesn’t unfold. Notice that one side will be thicker than the other;
that’s fine, it will hold water. Next, fill the cone halfway up with water, and
place it immediately over a burning candle. In a few minutes, the water
inside will boil, and the paper will not burn. This replicates the technique of
cooking in an open skin stretched over a fire. If you have the patience, try
cooking a carrot in the boiling water.
Pit Cooking
To get a sense of how people cooked in prehistoric times, first find an open
spot with soil soft enough to dig, at least 20 feet from any trees or buildings.
Dig a circular hole about three feet deep. Line the perimeter of the pit with
large stones for safety purposes and so that you can balance sticks across the
pit. Make a fire inside the pit, starting with small kindling and building up
to larger logs. When they have burned down to coals, you can start cooking.
This is the original way to barbecue, incidentally.
10
You want to cook long and slow, but because this is before the discovery of
metallurgy, you need to make a lattice using fresh green sticks. Lay them
across the pit in one direction, and then lay more in the other direction so that
you have a kind of primitive grill. They should be far enough away from the
hot coals so that they don’t burn, but they probably will char a little. Place on
top of the sticks any meat you prefer: a few split chickens, large cuts of pork
shoulder, or even a fish wrapped in sturdy leaves. Your seasoning should be
minimal—whatever herbs you can find and salt. Because you are using a
very gentle fire, expect larger pieces of meat to cook for at least an hour or
so. If you have a flare-up, you can always sprinkle a little water on the fire to
prevent the meat from burning. It will smoke a lot, which is good. Smoke is
unquestionably a major flavor category that we have learned to enjoy in the
millennia of cooking in this way.
11
What Early Agriculturalists Ate
Lecture 2
T
he agricultural revolution is probably the single most important event
in human history. In fact, there were several agricultural revolutions
at different times around the globe, and it was not one event, but a
long and gradual process wherein people made the shift from the nomadic
hunting-gathering way of life to the sedentary agricultural—and civilized—
way of life. In this lecture, you will learn how ancient peoples figured out a
way to support their growing population by moving toward an agriculturalbased society.
Lecture 2: What Early Agriculturalists Ate
The Beginning of the Agricultural Revolution
 Late-18th-century philosopher and economist Thomas Malthus
believed that like all animals, human populations are subject to the
availability of resources. A population can only grow as fast as the
resources can feed the new mouths. If it gets too large, many will
naturally die off, and if resources are abundant, then the population
will naturally grow faster.
12

In prehistoric times, even if a new technology like agriculture is
invented, the population will rise dramatically but still be limited
by whatever that new technology can produce. Malthus noted that
agriculture can only be increased arithmetically while population
increases exponentially.

Even if population pressure forced some people to find new ways
of getting food, it did not free them from the recurrent crises,
food shortages, and famines. In fact, in certain respects, it made
those worse because they were now depending on far fewer
plants: If a crop failure ruined one single species, there could be
a major devastating famine whereas before, no one species was
depended on, so if one thing was missing, they gathered or hunted
something else.

Apart from population pressure being a possible catalyst, resources
they had been depending on suddenly become scarce. This is
probably the initial catalyst. It may seem odd, but in those hunting
and gathering days, the Earth was also in the tail end of the last
major ice age, which meant that humans were relatively confined to
the warmer parts of the Earth and closer to the tropics, but so were
the animals they hunted and the plants they depended on.

When the Earth began to get warmer—from about 60 degrees
in summer to about 80 or more—there was more food and more
fields. What used to be great frozen glaciers became lush prairies.
The animal populations were no longer contained. Because the
vegetation grew more easily, the gathering was much better for
humans, too, so their populations also grow.

However, suddenly, they are out of balance. Hunting is harder, and
gathering is easier. More mouths to feed means greater pressure
to increase yield. Historians guess that plants were domesticated,
which means to actively change a species to accentuate certain
desired traits until that species no longer resembles the plant that
grew in the wild.

Dogs were probably the first animals to be domesticated, by
accident, following around human camps for scraps and providing
some watch from other predators. Not only can these animals
be trained to stay in herds, but they also are ruminants, which is
important because they can be fed grass (which humans can’t eat)
instead of other animals.
The Spread of the Agricultural Revolution
 About 10,000 years ago, the first place the agricultural revolution hit
was the region called the Fertile Crescent, an arc covering what is
today Iraq, Syria, eastern Turkey, Lebanon, and Israel. This region
just happened to luck out by having a lot of easily domesticated
plants and animals, including goats, sheep, and cows, which offer
meat, wool, hides, milk, and cheese. These types of animals provide
insurance, traction, transport, and manure (fertilizer).
13
© Design Pics/Thinkstock.
Lecture 2: What Early Agriculturalists Ate
Wheat, one of the most important cereal crops, can be grown in a wide variety of
climates and soils.
14

In addition, there is the wild ancestor of wheat all over the Fertile
Crescent. Einkorn, spelt, and emmer have a relatively high protein
content, so they can become staple crops. They contain about 8
to 14 percent protein, not nearly as much as meat, but people can
live on it as the base of their diet. It can also be stored. Without
wheat, civilization as we know it would never have developed in
the Fertile Crescent—or, for that matter, anywhere.

Rice in Asia, corn in Mesoamerica, potatoes and quinoa in South
America, sorghum in Africa, and teff in Ethiopia were all staple
starches that allowed the population to grow and caused a need for
further organizational rigor. Where there was no such staple, the
population invariably remained small, limited by what could be
gathered, and more advanced civilizations never appeared.

In the many places where agriculture never arose in ancient times—
including Australia, the Amazon, and the Kalahari desert—it was
not that these people were somehow less intelligent or savages,
but rather, they either did not need agriculture or there just weren’t
the right plants and animals that could be domesticated. Usually,
they were cut off from outside influences, so those plants couldn’t
be introduced.

By 7000 B.C., agriculture had reached Greece. By 6000 B.C., it
had reached Italy, eastern Spain, and central Germany, and by 5000
B.C., it had reached southern Britain. Some crops, such as olives,
couldn’t make it, but wheat definitely did. A north-south axis makes
transmission much more difficult—such as from North America to
South America—because there are too many climate zones to cross.

Growing plants and keeping animals not only led to a more
sedentary life, but also to agriculture, settled villages, or towns,
ultimately leading to civilization. More people living close together
led to more agreed ways of doing things, including formal laws.
It also led to trade, and where there’s trade, there’s some need to
regulate it.

This leads to rulers and the development of a social structure,
including classes. Then, soldiers emerge to keep the rulers in power,
collect taxes, protect the group from outside threats, or seize booty
or even territory from neighbors. In this case, it’s an advantage to
have a big population so that you have more soldiers to conquer
your neighbors.

Then, priests enter the picture to legitimate the ruler, create rituals
to appease the God, and support the priestly class. Rituals serve
to define behavior by socializing members of the group, bringing
them under the authority of those in power and creating cohesion
among the group. Priests also tend to be the ones who develop
writing systems to keep religious texts and dogma, and they record
official laws for the state. In most of the early states, priests also act
as bureaucrats.

Once an upper class is established, a specialized profession of
people (artists) provides luxury goods, adorning palaces, temples,
15
Lecture 2: What Early Agriculturalists Ate
and cooking for the elite. This is the first time that there was
anything like a professional chef.

At this point, the population really explodes. A more steady, even
if less nutritious, diet means less amenorrhea for women of childbearing age and more babies surviving infancy. In addition, there’s
great incentive to have larger families because that means more
hands to grow food.

Large populations with lots of cool stuff to steal leads to war,
which involves much bigger engagements, rather than small-time
raids, and chance encounters of nomadic peoples. Agricultural and
pastoral people—and even more so, the civilized—have a secret
weapon that gives them an advantage over others: disease.

A disease that is very nasty when it first arrives gradually
becomes less virulent in a population that has lived with it for
many generations. This means that when civilized peoples with
long contact with the disease meet the comparatively uncivilized
and isolated (hunter-gatherers), they wipe them out—sometimes
completely, because they have had no previous contact.
What Did the First Civilizations Eat?
 The first civilizations ate wheat and its relatives; barley, chickpeas,
and lentils all provided the staple base. Such foods are relatively
high in protein but are composed mostly of starch, and you have
to eat more of it just to stay fuelled. The first civilizations also ate
cabbages, lettuces, and a small amount of animal protein from goats,
sheep, cows, and pigs, which were all eventually domesticated.

16
Dairy products were almost totally new in the human diet. It is
pretty certain that human beings did not evolve an ability to digest
milk past infancy because in many places that don’t regularly drink
milk, there is still lactose intolerance, which is the inability to break
down lactose in milk. Only in places where they have depended
on milk for many centuries does this intolerance become less
pronounced.

Cheese is a product of bacteria, and next to the few new domesticated
species, the most important new foods invented by the earliest
civilizations are the product of things going bad—or, rather, being
colonized by benign bacteria. By controlling the conditions under
which the good bacteria proliferate, civilized humans invented a
whole series of new foods, including bread, wine and beer, cheese,
and pickled or cured vegetables and fruits.

The ability to store large quantities of food has an important effect:
You don’t have to eat everything you can and move on, as hunters
and gatherers did. All these things can be kept from season to season
and stored long term in case of crop failure, drought, or invasion.
Although they may have a less varied diet, it’s a more regular and
predictable diet.

Another consequence of food storage is that much more land
is going to have to be altered to grow crops. Even in the best
of situations, the same crops grown over and over caused soil
depletion, prompting people to move elsewhere—usually to invade
their neighbors.

Fats—especially olive oil and nut oils—are an important class of
foods that altered society. Not only do these provide a storable
source of extra calories, but also a new cooking medium: frying
and sautéing.

Wild fowl were eaten for millennia, but domesticating chickens
as well as ducks and geese is very important. This led to a ready
supply of eggs at a relatively small cost, and you could eat the fowl
when it was done producing eggs.

Fish remained primarily caught wild until modern times, but
shellfish farming hasn’t changed much since ancient times. It’s not
exactly domestication, but it is a very efficient way of farming.
17
Suggested Reading
Bottéro, The Oldest Cuisine in the World.
Brothwell, Food in Antiquity.
McGovern, Uncorking the Past.
Lecture 2: What Early Agriculturalists Ate
Culinary Activity
Making Neolithic Flatbread
This is a simple flatbread such as would have been eaten before ovens came
into common use. It is something like pita bread, but chewier and with a
lot more flavor. If you can find freshly ground whole wheat, or even grind
it yourself, all the better. Any whole wheat flour will work well. Begin
by fermenting half of a cup of the flour by mixing it with water until a
thick batter is formed. Leave this out on the counter, uncovered. The next
morning, add another half of a cup each of flour and water. Continue every
morning for about one week, at which time the mixture will be bubbling and
smell sour. You have just captured and nurtured wild yeast and lactobacilli.
Remove half of this starter to another bowl, and add another cup of water
and enough flour—and a good pinch of salt—to make a stiff dough. Knead
this well, and set aside for several hours until risen. This will happen quickly
in the summer and slowly in the winter. Keep the rest of the starter to make
another batch or for risen bread.
Divide the dough into fist-sized balls, and pat out into flat rounds with your
hands. Stretch each one until thin, but not so thin that they break. If you have
an outdoor fire, these can be cooked on a flat stone set over hot coals, but
indoors is just as good. Heat a pan, and simply throw in one flatbread. Count
to 30, and turn over. Count to 30 again, and then move the bread directly to an
open burner (assuming that you have a gas stove) or a barbecue. With tongs,
flip repeatedly until lightly charred on each side. Then, put into a covered
plate or casserole and continue with the rest of the flatbreads. They will stay
warm for a long time. Serve with a dip like hummus or baba ganoush, made
of charred eggplant. These are also the Neolithic ancestors of pizza and can
be topped with a fresh cheese to wonderful effect.
18
Akkadian Recipe
Three surviving cuneiform tablets from ancient Mesopotamia constitute the
earliest recorded recipes on Earth. They are quite cryptic, largely because
the ingredients have not all been identified. The following recipe is an
adaptation of the original recipe that fills in the procedural details. It gives an
approximation of what cooking would have been like 35 centuries ago. The
meat, which is domestic lamb, probably indicates that this is a dish for the
wealthy—or perhaps intended for a special occasion. Beer was the common
drink of all classes and was used widely in cooking as well. Consider how all
of these ingredients would have been comparatively uncommon before the
advent of agriculture.
Tuh’u Beet Broth
(adapted from Jean Bottéro’s The Oldest Cuisine in the World, p. 28)
Start with one pound of lamb shoulder cut into walnut-sized chunks or lamb
stew meat. Remove any visible fat, and dice finely. Fill a medium pot halfway
with water, and add the fat and the lamb. Add a teaspoon of salt; 12 ounces
of beer; a finely chopped onion; a handful of arugula, finely chopped; ground
coriander seed; and ground cumin. Bring the pot to a boil, and simmer for
about one hour. Add in three peeled and quartered beets. Then, make a paste
of one clove of garlic and the white part of one leek by pounding them in
a mortar or reducing them to a fine paste in a food processor. Add to the
pot. Let simmer until the beets are tender, about 30 minutes longer. Sprinkle
the soup with chopped fresh coriander before serving. Notice how all of the
ingredients would have been cultivated, though other dishes that use wild
game and birds were also recorded on these tablets. Also notice how similar
this dish is to Middle Eastern cooking today.
19
Egypt and the Gift of the Nile
Lecture 3
T
he first proper civilization is generally referred to as Sumer, which
encompassed a few dozen cities, including Lagash, Umma, Uruk,
and Ur—all of which are in modern-day Iraq. These people practiced
year-round agriculture, created complex irrigation systems, and practiced
monoculture, which involves growing single crops intensively. The first
recorded recipes were found in these cities, which began to flourish around
4000 to 3500 B.C. In this lecture, you will learn that a civilization blessed with
great fertility and natural boundaries, combined with court patronage from
the top, is bound to develop a complex cuisine that will last for millennia.
Lecture 3: Egypt and the Gift of the Nile
Ancient Egypt
 Egypt is the first place to have a fully developed, socially stratified
civilization outside the Fertile Crescent. The agricultural revolution
was imported there, and it’s the first place that we have full
documentary as well as archaeological evidence of agriculture,
domestication, cuisine, and medicine.
20

There is evidence of extensive writings as well as paintings of
foodstuffs; therefore, we can talk about the history of food there.
We also have tons of physical evidence courtesy of the hundreds
of preserved Egyptians—mummies—with whom there was often
entombed jars of food.

Egypt was ruled almost continuously by the same people from
about 3100 B.C. to about 525 B.C., when the Persians and then the
Greeks came in. Egypt has a very long and stable history of about
2.5 millennia—perhaps the longest continual civilization on Earth,
with the exception of China.

Egypt had long stretches of peaceful and prosperous dynasties,
unlike Sumerians, whose cities were constantly fighting among
themselves. Egypt, in contrast, is a big stable empire with a well-
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
Food and wine priestesses are often depicted in ancient Egyptian wall paintings.
developed court culture surrounding the pharaoh, which means
highly developed artistic traditions, including the culinary arts,
although there are no actual recipes from pharaonic times.

The geography of Egypt makes a nice contrast to Mesopotamia.
The Tigris and Euphrates are unpredictable rivers. Water was
channeled and used to irrigate Sumer, but after many centuries, the
soil became increasingly salinized, which made the land less fertile
over the years and eventually caused the whole civilization to fall
apart—the first ecological disaster in human history.

In contrast, the Nile floods very predictably each year from upper
to lower Egypt and into the delta, bringing tons of silt and rich soil
with it, which means that Egypt remains extremely fertile along the
flood plain.

Egyptians didn’t have a standing army for most of their history,
partly because of their extremely rigid and hierarchical social
21
Lecture 3: Egypt and the Gift of the Nile
structure with the pharaoh as not only an absolute ruler, but also
as a semidivine being descended from the gods. This is the first
culture in which there is a distinct elite cuisine as well as an explicit
nutritional theory.

Egypt had extensive trade networks, but none of the things they
imported were necessities. Egypt was pretty much self-sufficient;
they only imported luxury items, primarily for the wealthy
to consume.

Most Egyptologists agree that all Egyptians were relatively well
fed. The only direct evidence of malnutrition comes from frequent
reference to intestinal worms and schistosomiasis, which prevents
absorption of nutrients. There is even forensic evidence among
mummies that many people overate, and there is some evidence
of alcoholism.

Egyptians loved animals. They kept them as pets, mummified them,
worshipped them as gods, used them as symbols in their writing
system, and loved to eat them. Animals were often sacrificed to the
gods as well, which is a little confusing because it seems that if an
animal was sacred to a god, sometimes it had to be protected, and
other times, it had to be sacrificed to that god.

The Egyptians didn’t have any rigid food prohibitions set down in a
law like the Hebrews or Hindus, but for many kinds of people, such
as priests or members of a specific cult to a particular deity, certain
foods might be prohibited. However, these were rarely universal or
unchanging over time.
The Egyptian Diet
 Every visitor in classical times remarked how fertile Egypt was
and how much grain they had. The state stored massive amounts
of grain to prevent famine in lean years, as in the story of Joseph.
They often imported grain from Syria or demanded it in tribute
from subject states. The state usually distributed this grain as a
kind of welfare system administered by the priests, who perhaps
22
first offered it to the gods and then redistributed it. There is also
evidence that grain could be used for taxation purposes.

Barley also figured prominently in Egyptian myths about
resurrection. Because the plant dies and the seed goes dormant and
then sprouts up into a new plant, it was a kind of symbol of the
afterlife, and mummies were often buried with barley necklaces.

The Egyptians ate many different kinds of bread. It was made from
barley or spelt for the lower classes and more finely ground and
bolted wheat for the upper classes. They also leavened their bread
with yeast. Many different kinds of breads have been found buried
with the dead to feed them in the afterlife. Bread was the staple
food for Egyptians.

The Egyptians ate a lot of wild game—including ibex, gazelle,
and antelopes—and hunting was a favorite pastime. Above all,
the Egyptians loved beef. Large-scale cattle industry developed
in the north, where there are broad, flat plains. Although there are
numerous illustrations of butcher’s shops and cut-up pieces of
beef, we don’t really know how they cooked it, although we might
assume that they boiled it.

We know that the Egyptians kept dairy cows because there are
frequent depictions of milkmaids. Priests also kept sacred bulls,
which had special marks that denoted that they were incarnations
of the god Apis. The Egyptians also used beef by-products in
many medicines.

Egyptians definitely kept pigs in an earlier period of time, but
like the Hebrews, they seem to have avoided it later. There is no
evidence of an explicit taboo, but there are practically no remains or
depictions of pigs, and they were forbidden to be used as sacrifices.

Sheep and goats were also domesticated. They were introduced from
Asia along with ibex—a kind of Nubian mountain goat—which is
23
Amursanu-Pigeon Broth
M
ost Sumerian recipes were simple in preparation but quite
complex in the range of ingredients. For example, a broth
would be made by adding a piece of meat to a pot with
water, fat, salt, flavorings—such as onion, cumin, coriander, and
leeks—and sometimes bread crumbs for thickness, or even blood.
Split the pigeon in two; other meat is also used. Prepare water and
add fat, salt to taste, bread crumbs, onion, samidu, leek, and garlic.
Before using, soak these herbs in milk. It is ready to serve.
Lecture 3: Egypt and the Gift of the Nile
African. Sheep were mostly kept for wool, which priests weren’t
allowed to wear, and wealthy people seem to have avoided it.
24

Egyptians loved fowl, including geese, ducks, cranes, pigeons, and
quails. All were hieroglyphic symbols, and all were also worshipped.
Egyptians didn’t eat falcons, but they used them for capturing other
birds as an elite sport. They also hunted bigger birds with a bow
and arrow. Waterfowl that were used for food were usually wild and
caught using big nets. Ducks and geese were captured and fattened
in pens but were not technically domesticated.

Fowl were also used for temple offerings. In fact, cooked geese
were often included in funerary offerings and buried with the
deceased. Ibis were also sacred. They were associated with
Thoth and were forbidden as food; they’re extinct now in Egypt.
Falcons and vultures were also associated with specific gods that
were forbidden. Domestic chickens don’t seem to appear until
very late and were probably not used regularly until Ptolemaic or
Roman times.

Egyptians loved fish. They fished for sport with spears, with a hook
and line, or commercially with nets and traps. It is very difficult
to precisely identify the species that they ate from Egyptian words
or paintings, and there aren’t remains as with other animals. They
did have elaborate ways of preparing and preserving fish, which are
obviously very perishable. There are depictions of fish, presumably
dried and salted, being carried in baskets or being stacked for
sale. Egyptians also ate salted dried fish roe. They sometimes ate
crocodile, but this was also a sacred animal.

Like wheat, grapes were introduced into Egypt, and vineyards
were owned only by the wealthiest people. Frequently, harvesting
scenes were painted on tombs. Egyptians became connoisseurs
of wine, too. Wine jars were buried in tombs, such as King Tut’s,
and sometimes the jars contained information like the estate,
winemaker, and year of vintage. There is pretty good evidence that
there was a luxury trade in wine—or at least that pharaohs could
expect to drink the best wine in the afterlife.

The milky sap of older varieties of lettuce was suggestive of semen
to the Egyptians, which is why they used it as a fertility offering to
the gods. They also had celery, cabbage, gourds, and cucumbers.

The only beans that the Egyptians could’ve had were fava beans,
black-eyed peas, or chickpeas. They also had lentils and vetches.
Priests were supposed to avoid beans. Beans were as important then
as they are today.

The young shoots of papyrus can be peeled and steamed, but
papyrus was much more useful for paper. Other plants that were
familiar to Egyptians were sedge (a kind of small starchy tuber),
lotus, and water lily.

The spices that were common to Egyptians include cumin, anise,
coriander, fenugreek, mustard, and juniper. All were used in cuisine,
medicine, and mummification. In addition, garlic and onions
were very important; they were apparently fed to slaves building
the pyramids.
25

Many fruits—including figs, date palm, apples, plums, carob, and
pomegranate—were cultivated. Peaches, cherries, pears, and other
grafted trees came in Greco-Roman times. Olive oil was for the
most part imported, but in late dynastic Egypt, it was also grown
to a certain extent. Sesame oil and sesame paste (tahini) was also
important for cooking from about the 3rd century B.C.

The Egyptians mostly used animal fats for cooking. Some nuts
and radish or lettuce seeds were pressed into oil. However, there
is no concrete evidence for frying foods. They didn’t have cheese
or butter, but they did use milk. In addition, salt and natron (which
was especially used for mummifying) were very important.
Suggested Reading
Darby, Food.
Mehdawy, The Pharaoh’s Kitchen.
Rivera, The Pharaoh’s Feast.
Lecture 3: Egypt and the Gift of the Nile
Culinary Activity
Egyptian Beer
Sophisticated archaeological techniques that have been developed in the
past few decades have allowed researchers not only to identify vessels that
stored beer in ancient times, but they also can identify exact ingredients as
well. Patrick McGovern at the University of Pennsylvania is the best-known
biomolecular archaeologist of ancient drinks, and he has even worked with
breweries to develop modern versions. Although they taste quite good, they
use modern strains of yeast and brewing protocols that are very different
from ancient practice. These are the dictates of modern regulations and the
demands of commerce—but at home, you can brew exactly as the ancients
did, using wild yeast and simple pottery vessels. Be prepared, though, it will
not taste like your standard fizzy lager.
First, you will need barley, which must be whole, fresh, and not pearled,
which kills the seed. You are going to germinate the grains by sprinkling on
26
some water, leaving it in a sunny spot, and waiting until they just begin to
sprout. Turn them around every now and then, drain off the liquid, and replace
it if it begins to smell a bit. They should stay moist during germination. This
should only take a few days. Once you see them sprout, dry them off, and
place them in the sun to dry completely. If you want a darker brew, toast a
few of the grains gently and add to the rest. Then, break everything up in a
large mortar. You want small pieces, but not powder.
Next, heat the grain in water at about 140 degrees, and maintain that
temperature for an hour. Strain this into another pot, and pour some more hot
water over just to release the last bit of sugars in the mash. Now is the fun
part. Cover the pot with a cheesecloth, and let it ferment at room temperature.
Wild yeasts will invade, and it will start to bubble in a few days. Taste it
periodically; it will probably be a little sour, thick, and of course still room
temperature. That’s ancient beer—fairly low in alcohol but refreshing. If you
insist, strain it again, funnel into bottles, and refrigerate.
27
Ancient Judea—From Eden to Kosher Laws
Lecture 4
M
Lecture 4: Ancient Judea—From Eden to Kosher Laws
ore than any other civilization, the ancient Hebrews defined
their relationship to God in terms of what they ate, what was
considered clean and unclean, and what they sacrificed to their
God. The succession of different dietary codes given to the Hebrews through
their history in a certain metaphorical/mythological sense replicates actual
dietary changes experienced by humans. That is, the Old Testament is a good
source of history—not literal history, but stories recounted in Genesis reflect
real historical events as interpreted over generations. In this lecture, you will
learn about those stories in light of their relevance to food history.
Adam, Eve, Cain, and Abel
 A myth is a story that explains to people why things are the way
they are. It can explain natural phenomenon or social practices. It
explains why people do what they do—why they are different from
other people—and it also gets them to behave. More than anything,
it justifies the status quo.
28

In the beginning, God created the Earth. He created seed-bearing
plants and fruit trees. Then, he made animals and, finally, Adam,
who is given stewardship over the animals and gets to name them.
Animals are not intended as food; instead, Adam and Eve eat seeds
and fruits. They are not exactly vegetarians, but fruitarians. They
don’t kill anything—not even plants. They are in a state of complete
and utter innocence, totally guilt-free.

This part of the story reminds the Hebrews that according to God’s
original plan, all killing was wrong, and in a sense, it still is and
always will be. If this a mythological version of real events, what
would Eden be—that time when hominids ate vegetables?

Significantly, the hunting and gathering stage of human history has
been edited out, or at least the myth ignores what the Hebrews all
probably knew: that their ancestors hunted. The story needed a fall
from perfection; it had to show that evil is the fault of humans and
not in God’s original plan. Evil comes from our disobedience.

The fall is an act of eating: Eve eats the fruit, which may have
been a pomegranate because they probably didn’t have apples in
ancient Judea. Eves gives the fruit to Adam, and he eats it, too. As
a consequence of eating the fruit, Adam and Eve are kicked out
of Eden, and their punishment is labor. In other words, they have
experienced the agricultural revolution; they have gone from being
leisured, innocent gatherers to agriculturalists.

For the Hebrews, this story is a way to explain, justify, and reinforce
the settled way of life. It would be very dangerous to the survival of
this society if men wandered off into the brush. This keeps them at
home and teaches them their duty. It also explains to them why their
neighbors are sometimes not nice to them. There exists evil now,
and it’s our fault. Don’t blame God if something rotten happens.

Adam and Eve’s children, Cain and Abel, are a farmer and a
shepherd, respectively. Abel brings God some fat as an offering, and
Cain brings some produce of the soil—which, for some reason, God
rejects. This tells the Hebrews that you can’t bribe God. Sometimes
he favors what you do and sometimes not, but ultimately, what he
does is inscrutable to us lowly mortals.

Humans mess up again. Cain kills Abel. Significantly, Cain’s
punishment is that the ground will not produce food for him
anymore, and he is made to wander the Earth and he is given a
strange mark so that people stay away from him and don’t kill him.
He’s a nomadic shepherd—someone different from the Hebrews,
who are settled agriculturalists. This explains why Hebrews are
different from those around them and why they have to keep apart
from them.
29
Lecture 4: Ancient Judea—From Eden to Kosher Laws
The Great Flood and Noah’s Ark
 There is a cataclysmic flood. Everyone and everything drowns—
except for Noah. When it’s all over, Noah takes some ritually clean
beasts and birds and burns them whole on the altar, and the Lord
smelled the soothing odor. Above everything, God wants justice,
and killing, no matter who does it, demands punishment.

To right things in the universe, someone or something has to be
punished whenever someone or something is killed. God doesn’t
really care who is punished, strangely enough, so when you do
something wrong, you can substitute a goat—a scapegoat—who is
sacrificed in place of you.

What’s odd is that God hasn’t explained this whole system of justice
yet, and presumably, it’s later Hebrews putting this sacrifice in the
story to show that Noah is pious and good. However, it doesn’t
really make sense yet.

God also changes the human diet. Humans can’t be expected to live
as vegetarians anymore because they’re killers, so God lets them
kill animals and eat meat. This is an admission by God that humans
are faulty.

As a way to enforce justice in the universe, God states that murder
of all kinds is forbidden: If you kill a man, then someone must be
punished with death, and if you kill an animal, then God wants
satisfaction in the form of sacrifice.

There’s actually only one dietary restriction at this stage: Humans
can’t eat blood. It seems that the Hebrews thought that blood
contained the “life” of the creature, and all life belongs to God. The
blood prohibition is still in effect among Jews; animals have to be
slaughtered painlessly and the blood completely drained to be kosher.
Moses and the Seder Plate
 Israelites are enslaved in Egypt, and Moses is trying to get them
set free. The last of the nasty plagues is that the first-born son of
30
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
Matzo, unleavened bread, is eaten by Jews during Passover, or Pesach.
every household would die, and the way Moses signals to the angel
of death to avoid the Hebrew households is by having them smear
blood on the doors.

It’s from this episode that one of the central food rituals in Judaism
is first enacted—what we call Passover, or in Hebrew, the Seder.
The Hebrews are told to do all sorts of unusual things on that day
(and for seven days) and eat odd foods. They can’t eat leavened
bread (only matzo), supposedly to remember having to escape
quickly before the bread had time to rise in the morning. All of the
things on the Seder plate are meant to remind the participants of
some affliction or another.

The Hebrews escape from Egypt, and they have to wander through
the desert. They’re fed manna, which some people say is a sticky
excretion of bugs left on trees, not unlike honey. However, the
Israelites long for the fish, cucumbers, and garlic they ate in Egypt.
Finally, they get nearer to the promised land. Moses goes up
31
Mount Sinai and is given the law. This is a whole new epoch in
dietary history and, in fact, a new relationship between God and
the Israelites.
Lecture 4: Ancient Judea—From Eden to Kosher Laws
Food Prohibitions and Practices
 According to God, Hebrews can eat anything with a cloven hoof
and that chews its cud—which means ruminants like goats, sheep,
and cows—but not animals that have only one or the other, like the
camel that chews its cud but has toes, nor the pig that has cloven
hooves but doesn’t chew its cud.
32

There has been more debate over this question than probably any
other food taboo in history. It was once suggested that the Hebrews
avoided pork because they somehow knew about trichinosis,
so they forbid pigs, which are filthy anyway. In fact, they knew
nothing about trichinosis, which is killed by cooking, and other
animals carry other diseases, such as salmonella or anthrax.

Other historians have suggested that the Hebrews made the
prohibition so that they could be kept separate from their neighbors,
who ate pigs. However, many of the other Semitic people living
around the Hebrews also avoided pork.

Jean Soler explains food prohibitions as a problem of
categorization. Soler argues that it’s still a matter of murder: The
only animals allowed to be eaten are vegetarians—ones whose sins
don’t have to be expiated. Carnivores and omnivores, who will
commit murder, are ritually unclean, so they can’t be eaten. A few
animals got prohibited by mistake, such as hares, or because priests
determined that they were unclean, such as snails, shellfish, and fish
without scales.

The prohibition of boiling a kid in its mother’s milk is a culinary
form of putting together two things that don’t belong together—a
kind of culinary adultery. Among people who keep kosher, it has
come to be interpreted as meaning that you can never mix any milk
and meat products in the same meal.

Fasting is another food practice that is first set down in Leviticus,
and it’s one that has enormous importance to Judaism, Christianity,
and Islam. In the case of the Hebrews, it’s for the Day of Atonement,
Yom Kippur—a day when people are not supposed to work or have
fun. They just sit around and think about all the bad things they’ve
done and promise not to do them in the coming year. It’s the most
sacred holiday in the Jewish calendar.

The other thing instituted is the Sabbath. The Bible claims that
the Sabbath has roots going all the way back to the creation—to
God’s resting on the seventh day. It’s explicitly commanded that
you aren’t allowed to work on the Sabbath. Leviticus also institutes
tithes—1/10 of all produce—to support the priests, a practice that
survives in Christianity, too.

Hanukkah commemorates an episode during the Greek occupation,
when the Maccabees held an uprising. The significance of the eight
days of Hanukkah is that the temple oil miraculously lasted eight
days during a siege. Hanukkah has its own food rituals, particularly
frying in oil.

Around the time of Jesus, there was intense political turmoil. After
the Romans dispersed the Jews during the Diaspora, the ritual
sacrifices in the temple ceased. Among Jews, worship was now
in synagogues—sort of Greek-influenced schools, more places of
learning than holy temples. It’s also then that the home rituals that
focus so much on food take on much greater importance.
Suggested Reading
Cooper, Eat and Be Satisfied.
Douglas, Purity and Danger.
Greenspoon, Food and Judaism.
Harris, Cows, Pigs, Wars, and Witches.
Simoons, Eat Not This Flesh.
33
Lecture 4: Ancient Judea—From Eden to Kosher Laws
Culinary Activity
Passover Seder
Passover, or Pesach, is the most ritualized meal in the Jewish faith. Readings
from the book of Exodus dominate, along with Talmudic commentary, but
certain foods are also part of the liturgy. Matzo, or unleavened bread, is
absolutely essential and replaces risen bread entirely for the entire sevenor eight-day festival. The Seder is the traditional meal, during which four
glasses of wine are consumed; people eat reclining, dip bitter herbs in salt
water, and eat only unleavened bread. These peculiarities are recorded in
the “Four Questions,” which are sung or read by the youngest member of
the family. The exact order of the Seder is prescribed in the Haggadah, a
small book used through the service. Apart from foods that are eaten merely
traditionally, such as matzo ball soup or gefilte fish, a Seder plate contains
these ritually prescribed foods, each of which commemorates the story of
being freed from bondage in Egypt. The maror are bitter herbs, such as
horseradish; charoset is a thick paste of fruits and nuts to recall the mortar
used by slaves; karpas is another vegetable, usually parsley dipped into salt
water to commemorate tears; z’roa is a roasted lamb bone commemorating
ritual sacrifice in the Temple; and beitzah is a roasted egg, a symbol of
mourning. If you are lucky enough to be invited to a Passover dinner, this
may help to make sense of the ritual. Otherwise, try making your own
gefilte fish. The stuff that is sold in jars is pretty vile, so it’s worth making
it yourself.
Gefilte Fish
Use freshwater white fish, such as pike or carp—but any white fish will do.
Remove the fillets, and save the bones and heads. Discard innards and gills
if the fish hasn’t been cleaned. Put the bones and head into a pot, cover with
water, and add chopped carrot, celery, onion, fresh dill and parsley, and a
little salt. Simmer gently for 30 minutes and strain, pressing on solids. Return
strained liquid to the pot. This is your poaching liquid, or court bouillon.
Next, pound or process the fillets into a fine paste. Add a little salt and matzo
meal as a binder and an egg. With two spoons, form large torpedo shapes,
or quenelles, and drop gently into the simmering poaching liquid. Repeat
until all of the fish is used, removing the fish quenelles after about five to
34
seven minutes, when they should be light, fluffy, and cooked through. Next,
return all of your quenelles to the cooled poaching liquid, and put them into
the refrigerator for at least several hours, until they are completely cold.
Serve cold with freshly grated horseradish on the side and a sprig of dill.
Aficionados will also want some of the jelled poaching liquid; if you’ve used
enough bones, it will have congealed.
35
Classical Greece—Wine, Olive Oil, and Trade
Lecture 5
I
Lecture 5: Classical Greece—Wine, Olive Oil, and Trade
n this lecture, you will learn that the food culture of ancient Greece
is largely the result of its unique geography. Greece is an extremely
mountainous appendage hanging off the end of Europe and dipping
into the Mediterranean. Easy access to the sea means a lot of fish, but they
don’t have a lot of arable farmland, which means that with any sizeable
population, the Greeks have difficulty providing grain. They have to seek
out flat plains elsewhere and colonize them. This is key to understanding
why Athens became a mercantile state and why wealth was distributed fairly
evenly through the population.
The Geography of Greece
 Being a society heavily dependent on trade, it’s not surprising that
the Greeks invented money. The Lydians were first after about 625
B.C., but most city-states coined their own money soon thereafter—
and money clearly fosters trade. All of the new colonies that the
Greeks set up were allowed to figure out how to govern themselves.
There’s a great deal of political experimentation. Like the United
States, they started with a relatively clean slate.
36

Most of the colonies keep in close contact with the mother cities,
even if they become politically independent, so they remain closely
tied into Greece’s economy, supplying some products and serving
as a market for others—especially manufactured goods like pottery.

What Greece can grow, if not huge quantities of grain, are plants
that are better suited to hillsides, such as olives, grape vines, and
fruit trees. They experience long, hot summers and wet winters ideal
for these crops. These, apart from providing food for the people,
are excellent articles of trade. They can be preserved and stored
in amphorae, and olive oil and wine can be shipped anywhere. In
addition, Mount Hymettus, covered in wild thyme, still makes some
of the best honey in the world.

Trade makes some private citizens very rich—something we
haven’t really encountered elsewhere. Vibrant Greek culture is also
the product of wealth being spread out among a good percentage of
the population. It’s for very good reason that the Greeks produced
the very first cookbook, by Archestratus. Many people were
interested in gastronomy.

Because all the parts of Greece are relatively isolated, it will be
very hard to unite the whole peninsula under one ruler, so Greece
will be politically fragmented (unlike Egypt). There is no single allpowerful ruler; rather, there are lots of little city-states, each with its
own form of government.

As a result, there won’t be a grand court culture radically separate
from the food of the masses. In fact, most people ate relatively
simple foods—the stereotypical Mediterranean diet of bread, wine,
olives, cheese, some vegetables, and a bit of meat.

The geographical dispersion also meant that although it’s relatively
easy to invade one part of Greece, it’s nearly impossible to hold
onto anything or engulf it in an empire, as the Persians tried to do.
Archaic Greece
 The earliest record of Greek food habits is the description of what
Greek kings of the heroic age ate as described by Homer in the Iliad
and Odyssey, which were written in about 800 B.C. but describe a
Mycenaean culture that existed a few centuries before.

We also have many clues about early food culture in Greece from an
author writing shortly after Homer, Hesiod, whose Works and Days
tells about ordinary people’s lives. What is really fascinating about
Hesiod is that many of his stories parallel the biblical ones. Just as
in the Bible, there is a procession of different historical epochs.

Hesiod’s Works and Days also gives a full picture of what the
average Greek farmer had to do day in and out and season to
37
Lecture 5: Classical Greece—Wine, Olive Oil, and Trade
season: bring in the wine grapes, fatten the lambs, and knead the
bread dough. The food is simple, fairly monotonous, and basic.

Another feature of ancient Greek culture, from this early time
through classical times, is the public festival. These were organized
by the state and were basically a way to distribute meat to the
populace—a big communal barbecue, but also a sacrifice.

There were a lot of different cults in Greece; different cities had
different protector gods, such as Athena for Athens. There were also
many different kinds of worship, such as the Eleusinian Mysteries,
which has to do with the cult of Demeter and the sprouting and
rebirth of grain in the spring. This cult also involves hallucinogenic
drugs like opium and some odd eating rituals.

Another figure of archaic Greece is Pythagoras, who is sort of the
counterculture guru of this era. Even though we have no writings by
him, he was renowned for starting a sort of philosophical commune
in southern Italy, and he’s the first person in the West to espouse
vegetarianism. He is famous for his Pythagorean theorem, which is
very important to mathematics.
Classical Greece
 In classical Greece (about 490 to 330 B.C.), the most interesting
food custom is the symposium, which was usually a time set aside
for after the main meal of the day (deipnon) in the evening, when
men laid around on couches drinking and discussing things.
38

Unlike Plato’s symposium, a true symposium involved performers,
naked flute girls, and people telling dirty stories. Most importantly,
they drink a lot of wine. Greeks mixed their wine with water,
probably because it was fairly thick, sweet, and highly alcoholic.

Plato merely appropriated this drinking-party form to present
a discussion. His particular brand of rationalism was meant to
counteract the wild, irrational rituals of the early Greeks. In fact,
Plato has a certain attitude toward food that influences Western
thought even in present times.

Plato thought that things of this world, material objects, were less
real and important than things that exist in the world of ideal forms.
In other words, if you are thinking about chairs, a concrete object
is a chair, and so are all the others, and they’re all a little different,
so none can be the absolutely true chair—or the concept of “chair”
that’s equally applicable to all chairs at all times. However, you can
think of the ideal form of “chair,” of which these are only inferior
reflections.

If ideas are purer than objects, then activities that involve thought
are more highly valued than physical and manual activities. In
Phaedo, Plato expressed the idea that being a philosopher or poet is
more noble and worthwhile than being a builder or chef. Pleasures
of the body are distracting and demeaning, and just as the soul is
more valuable and eternal than the body, intellectual pursuits are
more important than physical pleasures. This attitude, a kind of
secular food guilt, reverberates throughout Western civilization.

There is another dialogue by Plato, Gorgias, in which he compares
cooking, a menial task that only serves to stimulate the senses, with
medicine, which tells people what to eat and preserves health and
is, thus, the nobler of the two. There certainly were many Greeks
who were intensely interested in gastronomic pleasure, which is
probably why Plato denounced it so fiercely.

The Greeks produced the very first cookbook. Actually, there were
several, but only a fragment of one of them survives, and it was
written by Archestratus in about 330 B.C. Most of what survives
are the sections on fish. It’s written in verse, so it was probably
meant to be read aloud at a symposium.

Archestratus is a connoisseur. He knows where the best fish comes
from and has the ability to get it in the proper season. He knows
how to prepare food without disguising its natural flavor and
39
texture. His cooking is light and elegant, presumably intended to
counteract what must have been before him—a cuisine based on
abundance and variety. This cooking is more refined because it
takes discernment and knowledge, not just a lot of money.
40

Greeks did eat wild hare and
also
puppies.
Sometimes,
they ate wild ass. They also
ate lots of snails, even though
physicians thought that they
were dangerous. Wild birds
were also part of Greek cuisine.

Greeks domesticated chickens, Olive oil is a natural fat that has
geese, and quails. Eggs were been used by humans for ages.
very important in Greek cuisine.
They didn’t use butter, which doesn’t keep in hot weather, or drink
fresh milk, which they associated with wild barbarians. However,
they did eat a kind of yogurt that was later called oxygala. Cheese
is very important. Greeks usually ate fresh goat or sheep cheeses,
which were sometimes brined to preserve them.

Fish are also extremely important—from huge tuna, sturgeon,
sharks, bluefish, mullet, and pike to tiny anchovies. Shellfish, too,
abound in the Aegean Sea, including octopus and squid, oysters,
© Ingram Publishing/Thinkstock.
Lecture 5: Classical Greece—Wine, Olive Oil, and Trade
What Did Ordinary Greeks Eat?
 Hunting is no longer important. The main species that are
domesticated are sheep, pigs, and goats. Sheep and goats were
mainly used for dairy, but
young kids and lambs were
eaten and were considered a
seasonal delicacy. Pork is the
most commonly eaten meat.
In general, beef is very rare.
All of these animals could be
sacrificial victims.
crabs and shrimp, and sea anemone. Few important cities are very
far from the water. Greeks also invented a fish sauce, which will be
important in Roman times.

In terms of fruit, olives and grapes were the most important.
Domesticated fruits include apples and quinces, plums, sour
cherries, watermelon, and cucumbers. All of these were served with
meals, but sweet fruits and nuts—such as figs, pears, pomegranate,
myrtle berries, and mulberries—were also served after a meal. Dates
were well known but were imported. Raisins were also important.
Almonds were the most popular type of nut, but the Greeks also ate
walnuts, hazelnuts, chestnuts, and pine nuts.

The Greeks also enjoyed a lot of vegetables, including lettuce
and cabbages, beets, asparagus, cardoons (which later become
artichokes), celery, onions, garlic, and hyacinth bulbs. They ate
tons of wild herbs, including oregano, thyme, basil, mint, coriander,
cumin, and wormwood. Sesame seeds were an important garnish
along with poppy. The Greeks ate legumes, such as peas, lentils,
and chickpeas. Grains like barley were important alongside wheat.
The Greeks baked bread and cakes.
Suggested Reading
Archestratus, The Life of Luxury.
Dalby, Siren Feasts.
Davidson, Courtesans and Fishcakes.
Culinary Activity
Archestratus’s Shark Recipe
Archestratus, who lived in about 330 B.C. near the Greek colony of Gela in
Sicily, was renowned for his knowledge of where the best ingredients came
from throughout the Greek world. He was a connoisseur, in both ancient and
modern senses. Most of the surviving fragments from his cookbook are about
fish. He doesn’t offer recipes per se, but, rather, gastronomic commentary
41
about foods and how to prepare them. The following is a reconstructed recipe
based on his commentary about karcharia, probably a kind of small shark.
Lecture 5: Classical Greece—Wine, Olive Oil, and Trade
From Archestratus’s The Life of Luxury, translated by John Wilkins
and Shaun Hill, p. 59–60
Take two shark steaks and place them in a ceramic casserole with a handful
of basil leaves, sprinkle them with ground cumin and salt, and drizzle
on a generous amount of olive oil. Bake these in a 350-degree oven for
40 minutes. Serve topped with a dollop of “pounded sauce,” which is an
ancestor of pesto. Make the sauce by taking a handful of basil, a small garlic
clove, a drizzle of olive oil, and a pinch of salt, and pound in a mortar until
smooth and fine. Serve on top of the shark steak. Because the description
only says to use “fragrant leaves,” feel free to substitute another herb such
as parsley or sage, but because basil comes from the Greek word basileus,
meaning “king,” it seems appropriate. If you are so inclined, eat this with
your fingers while reclining on a couch. Serve with a fragrant retsina, a white
wine flavored with mastic resin.
42
The Alexandrian Exchange and the Four Humors
Lecture 6
I
n Hellenistic civilization, there were many different ways to think about
food, including using it to show off wealth, maintain health, or strike a
philosophical position. It was this wealth of attitudes that the Romans
adopted when they conquered Greece. In this lecture, you will learn how
the foodways and cuisine of Greece changed dramatically in the wake of
the vast empire of Alexander the Great. It can be argued that the Greeks also
changed the rest of the world in terms of food.
Hellenistic Civilization
 Alexander the Great was a Macedonian and, therefore, was
considered to be a semibarbarian by other Greeks. He incorporated
not only the entire peninsula of Greece into his empire, but also
conquered Palestine, Egypt, and the vast Persian empire, with lands
stretching all the way to modern Afghanistan and India. He founded
cities in all of these places—most called Alexandria.

Greek culture was imported to these places. Even though politically
it didn’t hold up as a unified empire, the successor states continued
to be ruled by Greek dynasties. Greek culture not only engulfed all
of these others, but Greek culture also became enriched by them.
All of these far-flung places become Greek-like, too—hence the
term “Hellenistic,” which dates from around 323 to 250 B.C., until
the Romans eventually sweep in and take over everything (and also
become Hellenized in the process).

This is the first major period after the agricultural revolution
of eight millennia before, in which there is a major exchange of
animal and vegetable species from East to West—all the way across
the Eurasian continent and also from Africa to Europe and Asia.

During this Alexandrian, or Hellenistic, exchange, not only do
species and diseases travel back and forth, but whole civilizations
43
Lecture 6: The Alexandrian Exchange and the Four Humors
also interact and influence each other. If the trend toward
globalism—connecting far-flung regions together by means of
trade—is one of the most important events in human history, then
food is once again the catalyst.
44

In classical times, the Greek diet was simple, including bread, wine,
cheese, olives, vegetables, and some meat. The Greeks traded these
items across the Mediterranean, but the foods are pretty much the
same from one end to another. When Alexander’s empire expands,
there were suddenly standard units of money across a much greater
space, a lingua franca (Greek) so that everyone can communicate,
and another vast trade network that included India and even China.

Gradually, people in the West start getting things from India like
pepper and ginger. In addition, other Indian spices like nigella,
spikenard, and asafetida were imported in Hellenistic times. There
are also accounts that suggest that sugar first entered into the
West in this manner as a medicinal curiosity, but honey is still far
more important.

Probably the most fascinating spice, certainly with the longest
journey, was cinnamon (also cassia), which the Hellenistic Greeks
used as a flavoring. As articles of conspicuous consumption, spices
confer distinction on the wealthy because only the wealthiest can
afford them.

Beyond spices, there is also rice, which was new in the West. Rice
was not eaten in great quantities because it was so expensive. It was
never grown in classical times; it was always imported. Rice was
used more as a medicine than a food.

Apart from exotic imported items, there were also a number
of plants introduced that could be grown in Europe. In fact,
Alexander’s expeditions brought botanists along to identify viable
species. Also, the Greek administrations in the East wanted familiar
Greek foods, so the exchange went both ways. Possibly the most
important thing to travel from East to West was citrus fruit.
Myma
T
he following is a recipe for a meat dish from the cookbook of
Epaenetus. This dish is savory because of the meat and liver,
spicy because of the cumin and coriander, sour because of
the vinegar, sweet because of the raisins and honey, and aromatic
because of the hyssop, thyme, and silphium.
A myma of any sacrificial animal, or chicken, is to be made by
chopping the lean meat finely, mincing the liver and offal with the
blood, and flavoring with vinegar, melted cheese, silphium, cumin,
thyme leaf, thyme seed, Roman hyssop, coriander leaf, coriander
seed, geteion (maybe a spring onion), peeled fried onion, raisins or
honey, and the seeds of a sour pomegranate.

Hellenistic civilization, compared with classical Greece, was much
more luxurious, extravagant, and even opulent. Ancient writers
seem to think that this was a result of the influence of Persia.

The opulence is most obvious in the art of the period, which
became really decadent—even pornographic at times. There was
also an unctuousness that was evident in the culinary arts. For
all the discernment and knowledge Archestratus had, his recipes
were still pretty simple. However, all of that changes in the
Hellenistic period.

All of this opulence was the result of increased trade, migration,
spread of merchants and specialized agriculture, and slave trade. All
sorts of previously unconnected cultures mixed, and new luxuries
were used in cooking in new ways.
Humoral Physiology
 Along with all of the luxury, the Hellenistic period was also a
golden age for dietary writing. With all of these people indulging,
they needed doctors to tell them how to get well. The genre of
45
Lecture 6: The Alexandrian Exchange and the Four Humors
dietary regimens begins with the Hippocratic writers in the 4th and
5th centuries B.C., which is classical Greece. There was a historical
figure named Hippocrates, but there was also a slew of other
authors—often referred to as Hippocratic authors—before and after
him whose writings were later ascribed to him.
46

The Hippocratic authors who lived in Hellenistic times were often
physicians working for kings as patrons. None of these authors were
as important as Galen of Pergamum, who was a Greek physician
who went to work for the Roman emperor Marcus Aurelius and his
successors. Galen wrote more than any of his predecessors; in fact,
there are more surviving works by Galen and more pages written by
him than any other writer of classical antiquity.

Galen’s importance is also that the theories he came up with
were adopted by many later civilizations: Byzantine, Islamic,
and European cultures into the 18th century. He was the medical
authority for almost 2,000 years.

Elaborating on Hippocrates, Galen pretty much invented the
theoretical system known as humoral physiology. This entire system
is based on the already widespread idea that the whole universe is
made up of four basic building blocks, or elements: fire, water, air,
and earth. Each of these can be described with qualitative terms like
hot and dry (fire), cold and moist (water), hot and moist (air), and
cold and dry (earth).

The actual fire, water, air, and earth that we see are actually made
up of several elements; they’re not the pure element or essence.
Just as the universe is made up of elements, so are our bodies. The
human body is also regulated by four basic fluids, or humors, that
correspond to the elements: blood, phlegm, yellow bile (or choler),
and black bile (or melancholy).

Health was defined as the proportional balance of these four
fluids, though all humans are born with a predominance of one
particular humor—or at least a tendency for that humor to be
produced in excess. This meant that individuals could be classified
as sanguine (in which case blood dominates), phlegmatic, choleric,
or melancholic.

An individual’s humoral makeup, or complexion, determined the
diseases they would be subject to, their character and emotional
state, and, most importantly, what diet they should follow. Thus,
unlike modern nutritional theory, there could be no universal set
of prescribed nutritional guidelines or even an idea of good foods
or bad foods that would apply to all people. Therefore, an accurate
diagnosis and a tailor-made regimen for each individual were
considered crucial in this system.

Another central idea in this system was that each humor has its own
qualitative properties that can be described just like the elements
as hot and moist (blood), cold and moist (phlegm), hot and dry
(choler), and cold and dry (melancholy). These properties are not
so much actual tactile measurements of temperature and humidity
as they are the effect each humor has on the body. This system is
defined as allopathic; it corrects ailments by applying remedies
opposite to the patient’s distemperature or imbalance.

Matching the proper foods to the individual was the key to this
entire system. Hot and moist people needed cold and dry foods
when imbalanced; cold and moist people needed hot and dry
foods. The assumption is that few people are ever well balanced
and usually need some form of correction. Theoretically, however,
healthy people should maintain their particular humor by eating
foods similar in qualities to their own humoral makeup.

Another crucial consideration when determining the ideal diet for
a person was the texture and consistency of a given food. How
quickly something would pass through the body and how easily it
could be digested was just as important as its humoral qualities.

We still use these humoral terms to describe mood and character
types: A sanguine person is cheery and optimistic, phlegmatics are
47
lazy and slothful, cholerics are prone to violent outbursts of anger,
and melancholics are sad.
New Philosophical Schools
 There are a few new philosophical schools that pop up in the
Hellenistic period and remain influential in Roman times that
also have interesting attitudes toward food. The first of these are
the Stoics, people who think that you don’t show your emotions
because it makes you weak and that you shouldn’t get too attached
to things that are ephemeral. It is a strange philosophy—but also
one that called for austerity, simplicity, and denial of luxuries.
Lecture 6: The Alexandrian Exchange and the Four Humors

Another school is the Epicureans. The word “epicurean” later came
to be associated with luxury and gluttony, but in fact, Epicurus
espoused exactly the opposite. Epicurus had the audacity to suggest
that everything we do should be directed toward maximizing our
pleasures and minimizing our pain. However, some things, though
very pleasurable in the short term, cause greater pain in the long
term. Ironically, Epicurus espouses a doctrine of simplicity—in the
attempt to maximize pleasure.
Suggested Reading
Athenaeus, Deipnosophists.
Dalby, Dangerous Tastes.
Galen, Galen: On the Properties of Food.
Culinary Activity
Galenic Meal
Just as today, there is no way of knowing if the ancient Greeks followed
their physicians’ instructions when it came to eating a healthy diet, but
Galen of Pergamum’s writings became so popular—and dominated medical
thought for 15 centuries following his death—that it is safe to assume that
people knew a great deal about what was considered best to eat. While
Galen doesn’t offer recipes, his comments about specific ingredients are so
48
detailed that it is possible to reconstruct a healthy meal using the system of
humoral physiology, or balancing the hot, cold, moist, and dry humors in a
single dish.
From Galen’s On the Properties of Foodstuffs, p. 61
Chickpeas, Galen notices, are made into soups in the country, sometimes
using chickpea flour cooked with milk. He thinks that chickpeas are less
prone to cause flatulence than other beans, are more nutritious, and even
serve as an aphrodisiac, but there is also the skeleton of a recipe that he
says is common among us. The following is a reconstructed recipe. The
combination, apart from being delicious, fits into his definition of a healthy
meal, as it does ours.
Take two cups of chickpeas, and soak them overnight. Then, simmer gently
in fresh water for about an hour. When the chickpeas begin to get tender, add
a teaspoon of salt, a dash of olive oil, and some oregano. Continue cooking
until completely cooked through. Then, take a dry cheese, such as Greek
kefalotiri or kashkaval, and pound it or process it finely until it resembles
flour. Sprinkle this on the chickpeas and serve. Feta cheese crumbled on top
of the chickpeas is also very good, and because Galen doesn’t specify the
type of cheese, feel free to use what you like best.
When to Eat Peaches
Peaches were first imported to the West in antiquity—hence the name
persika, meaning that they come from Persia, but they are actually from the
Far East. Galen warns us, despite the lovely taste, that the juice and flesh of
peaches easily corrupts and, therefore, should not be eaten at the end of the
meal because the peaches float on the surface of the stomach, where they
corrupt. However, before a meal, they serve as a lubricant, helping other
foods down the digestive tract. As an experiment, try eating peaches at the
end of a meal and then, next time, at the start. Is there any difference? Were
you psychosomatically influenced by Galen’s suggestion, or is his model of
digestion completely outdated?
49
Ancient India—Sacred Cows and Ayurveda
Lecture 7
B
Lecture 7: Ancient India—Sacred Cows and Ayurveda
ecause of the logical structure, cooking methods, ingredients, texture
of dishes, and way of eating, Indian cuisine will be one of the great
culinary traditions spread around the world—especially the places
to which Indians emigrate in the 19th century, including the Caribbean, east
Africa, and Britain. This lecture will cover a few thousand years of ancient
Indian history, from a few thousand B.C. to about 1200 A.D, and you
will learn that ancient India had many different cultures with hundreds of
languages and many different food customs.
Early Indian Civilizations
 The earliest civilizations in India were settled around the Indus
River valley in northwestern India from about 2500 to 1800 B.C.
They built cities like Harappa and Mohenjo Daro that were as
sophisticated, well populated, and wealthy as those in Sumer and
Egypt at the same time. In other words, the same exact pattern of
agriculture and animal domestication, population growth, urban
concentration, and eventually kingdoms arose in these cities as it
did in other ancient civilizations.
50

Also as in Egypt and the earliest Greek civilizations (Mycenaeans),
there was a period of turmoil and invasion at about 1500 B.C., a
kind of Dark Ages, that for some reason happens everywhere.
We don’t know quite as much about the earliest civilizations in
India because no one can read their language, so all we have is
archaeological evidence.

Germans were one people descended from a group we know as
Proto-Indo-Europeans. We know practically nothing about these
people, but linguistic evidence suggests that they existed. For
example, the language of the Aryans who invaded India is called
Sanskrit, and it has certain words and grammatical structure in
common with Archaic Greek and even with ancient Celtic (Irish).

This suggests that all of these languages and people descended
from a common stock—distinct from the Semitic peoples, Ugaritic
Sumerians, or the Egyptians. The Indo-Europeans are, thus,
ancestors of those speaking Greek, Romance languages, Slavic,
Germanic, Celtic, Persian, and Hindi. The Aryans specifically were
the ancestors of the latter.

When the Aryans arrived, they were not farmers like the older
inhabitants. They were warriors who used chariots drawn by horses,
and they wrought havoc on the local population. The Aryans also
raised cattle for their sustenance and sacrificed them to their gods.
Being heroes, just like the Greek heroes of the Iliad, they ate beef in
prodigious quantities, milked their cattle, and made butter.

How these people went from being cow eaters to cow worshippers
is one of the most hotly debated issues in food history. They were
not always strict avoiders of beef; there are periods when they
allowed it and others when they didn’t.

The religion introduced by these people forms the basis for what
eventually became Hinduism, based on the Rigveda, which was
composed about 1000 B.C. or earlier (making it one of the oldest
religious texts in existence) in Sanskrit.

Hinduism is a polytheistic religion, but all of the gods are
manifestations of one primordial principle, or essence, or even
soul that existed at the start of time: atman. In fact, everything
in the universe is a subdivided offspring of the original atman,
which means that everything is made of divine substance. We’re
not all lesser inferior created beings, as in the biblical tradition,
and through meditation, fasting, and in some traditions taking up
a yoga pose and reciting a mantra, you can reconnect with the
greater cosmos.

Because all creation is equal manifestations of atman, theoretically,
you should not kill anything. Murder is the same no matter what
the creature. This means that, technically, the Brahmans, or priestly
51
Lecture 7: Ancient India—Sacred Cows and Ayurveda
class, should logically be strict vegetarians. In fact, they still
sacrificed cows and ate meat at this point.
52

Aryans also introduced something else crucial to understanding
their ideas about food, and that is a caste system. Whatever caste
you were born into, you were stuck in forever. The ultimate result
was many different ways of eating from region to region and,
importantly, from caste to caste.

In 600 B.C., there was a period of great social unrest; there were
widespread famine, drought, and wars throughout India. It seemed
to people that the Aryan gods were failing, and the Brahmans began
to be the object of suspicion and anger. According to one theory,
the Brahmans decided to reinvent themselves to survive, so they
began to add new sacred writings that explained food prohibitions
in detail—particularly to denote who could eat with whom, but
also to forbid cow eating. They came forward as ascetic, celibate,
and vegetarian.

The most important part of their reform effort was to make cows
sacred and inviolable. In the Upanishad (about 800 B.C.), a clear
idea of the transmigration of souls develops so that all beings are
reincarnated according to their actions on Earth—whether they
have good or bad karma. The Brahman priests decided that cows
are the highest creature you can come back as; as a result, eating
cows or even mistreating them is forbidden.

Some of the other food prohibitions are recorded in the Dharmasutra, which was cast into written form in the 6th century B.C. There
are all sorts of prohibitions against accepting food from people of
a different caste, prohibitions against meat from specific types of
animals, and prohibitions against certain vegetables (such as garlic,
leeks, onions, mushrooms, and turnips).

These dietary ideals are only for the Brahmans. People of lower
castes only observe these rules during certain holidays or are
allowed to eat some meats. People of the lowest caste, the
untouchables, are pretty much allowed to do whatever they want.
Diet is determined almost entirely by caste.
Vegetarianism and Ayurvedic Medicine
 At around the same time as they are codifying all of these food
regulations, a young man named Siddhartha Gautama (later
Buddha), noticed all the suffering in the world and decided to go
wandering on a spiritual quest to find the truth—something not
uncommon in these days. It involved yogic concentration and
severe asceticism, trying presumably to recognize the atman, or
world soul.

During his travels, it occurred to him that the fact that everyone
is always trying so hard to be successful—so vehemently attached
to the self and their own prosperity—only creates more suffering
because you never really get what you want. Instead, why not
just stop caring about what you eat? Don’t starve yourself, and
don’t stuff yourself. Eating enough to live is a concept called the
Middle Way.

Most importantly, the key to relieving yourself and others from
suffering is by agreeing not to engage in any violence whatsoever.
The truly enlightened will “break the chain of causation”—
in other words, break the chain of reincarnation. They will
achieve nothingness, or nirvana. Therefore, Buddhists become
strict vegetarians.

Another vegetarian religion that appears about the same time as
Buddhism, Jainism, has survived in India. The Jains are people who
avoid even the accidental killing of bugs. The Hindu Brahmans also
adopted vegetarianism and later introduced it through missionaries
to southern India, which is still for the most part vegetarian to
this day.

Ayurvedic medicine, which is the science or knowledge of
longevity, arose probably sometime A.D. but claims to be based
on much older traditions, such as the Caraka-samhita medical text.
53

The dietetic system that arises in this tradition is still practiced
in India today, and it makes a nice comparison with the humoral
physiology of the West. There are also elements in the Ayurvedic
system, but there are five of them: air, fire, water, earth, and space.
Each of these combined with another creates what is called a dosha,
which is a basic force that governs physiologic functions—not
exactly a humor, but an energy principle.

Having too much or too little of each of these forces causes illness.
The key is a balance. As in the West, individuals are born with a
certain predilection toward one dosha being too strong—sort of like
their complexion, or prakriti. Just as in the Western system, foods
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
Lecture 7: Ancient India—Sacred Cows and Ayurveda
Caraka supposedly lived about 800 or 1000 B.C., but some authors
date the text as old as 1500 B.C.
Ayurvedic medicine involves the use of herbal medicines and preparations.
54
or medicines can increase or decrease the power of any one of
the doshas.
Indian Cuisine
 Indian cuisine is perhaps one of the most interesting, intricate
cuisines on Earth. The Indian food that people are most familiar
with is for the most part northern Indian and is heavily influenced
by Islamic cultures and the Mughal invaders who ruled the north.
When you think of kebabs and tandoori, with aromatic spice mixes,
those are more recent introductions from the Middle East. The
emphasis on lamb is a Persian influence.

Rice is the staple in the fertile plains that are well irrigated; it’s
probably one of the few foods that all Indians eat. Legumes are
probably more important here than anywhere else—maybe with the
exception of soy in China. The importance of legumes is to supply
protein for vegetarians and others on a largely vegetable-based diet.
Dairy products are also important everywhere.

The use of spices is probably the most distinctive thing about
Indian cuisine. Spice mixtures are usually toasted and ground fresh.
Sometimes, these mixtures contain wet ingredients, too. Pepper,
cardamom, and ginger grow in India, but many of the other spices,
including cinnamon and cumin, have to be imported.

Pickles or chutneys are also important, but they’re usually made
fresh from fruits like mangos or limes or from vegetables like
eggplant. Though native to New Guinea, sugar was first cultivated
and processed by India. Indian cuisine might be responsible for the
global sweet tooth of modern times.
Suggested Reading
Achaya, A Historical Dictionary of Indian Food.
Ferrières, Sacred Cow.
Harris, Cows, Pigs, Wars, and Witches.
55
Culinary Activity
Making Ghee
Among the explicit food taboos in ancient India, there were a few substances
considered absolutely pure. Ghee, a kind of clarified butter, is one of those. It
was used in sacrifice, and because it is made from cows’ milk, it is considered
among the most nourishing substances on Earth. There are also very practical
reasons why ghee is used in India; it is practically imperishable, even in
intense heat. You can even fry in it.
Lecture 7: Ancient India—Sacred Cows and Ayurveda
Take a pound of butter, and place it in a pot on the lowest possible heat—
or even in the oven at about 200 degrees. Let it slowly simmer without
disturbing. After foaming up briefly, the excess water will evaporate, and the
milk solids will come together and eventually will precipitate to the bottom
of the pot. Unlike clarified butter, this gives the ghee a deep, nutty flavor.
Simply pour off the clear fat, and store in a jar. Discard solids.
A Recipe Using Ghee
Unlike in the West, spices in the East are always gently toasted before
cooking, which brings out the flavor, and then ground fresh. This recipe is
vegetarian and could be eaten by any caste, as long as it was prepared by
someone of the same caste.
In a small iron skillet, dry toast spices, including coriander, cumin,
cinnamon, and pepper. Be careful not to let them burn. Transfer to a mortar
or spice grinder, and reduce to a powder. Add to this ground turmeric and
fenugreek. This is a simple spice mix, and every family has their own; these
mixes are often extremely complex, which is not surprising because may of
these spices are native. Next, cut up an eggplant, leaving the skin intact. Heat
some ghee in a pot, and add the spice mixture and the eggplant pieces. Leave
to stew very gently until the eggplant has cooked through and is tender. For
observant Brahmans, onions would be left out, but they are actually a very
tasty addition.
56
Yin and Yang of Classical Chinese Cuisine
Lecture 8
S
ome cultures have strong, complex culinary traditions, and others
don’t. There are two underlying factors that help establish culinary
traditions, but are not absolutely essential: a variety of ingredients,
either grown or imported and marketed, that can be obtained by a good
proportion of the population; and long, stable kingdoms or relative peace
and prosperity over a long period, during which culinary techniques can
develop and become perfected. In this lecture, you will learn why China has
one of the longest and most complex culinary traditions on Earth.
Chinese Dynasties and the Development of Culinary Art
 You need at least one of the following three conditions for culinary
art to develop:
○ You need a strong tradition of the family and household as
the basic unit of production—ideally, an extended household
in which members of many generations live together and pass
down cooking techniques from generation to generation. In
China, the family, filial piety, obedience to parents, respect for
the elderly, and even ancestor worship mean that food customs
and cooking techniques got passed down for centuries, and
respect for old ways meant that they changed little over time
but could be perfected.
○ Another possibility is a vibrant court culture, involving a
concentration of wealth, usually involving autocratic rule by
an emperor or king, patronage networks, and a certain degree
of social mobility. Other wealthy people would imitate the
court, and its customs would circulate. In China, an extensive
court culture and access to it as a state employee, priest, or
soldier spread the imperial cuisine—even if it could never be
as elaborate and grand.
57
Lecture 8: Yin and Yang of Classical Chinese Cuisine
○ In lieu of the other two conditions, the other possibility is a
thriving restaurant culture. With many people who can eat
out often, there is competition among professionals to attract
customers. This is key to 19th-century France and arguably
the modern-day United States, in which there isn’t a strong
extended family anymore and there never was a court.
58

China—with the first and second conditions, with a wealth of
ingredients native and imported, and with an extraordinary series of
stable dynasties—has the potential to be the most varied, complex,
and sophisticated cuisine on Earth. Few other traditions even
come close.

The earliest Chinese civilization we know a lot about is the Hsia
period, which is after the advent of agriculture, domestication of
animals, and pottery—all of which happens just slightly after it did
in the Fertile Crescent.

By the Hsia period, there were many flourishing city-states,
advanced civilizations with large populations, that were
contemporaneous with the Indus River valley, with Dynastic Egypt,
and with Cretan and Mycenaean Greece.

Then, around 1500 B.C., just like elsewhere, these civilizations
were invaded from the outside by less “civilized” peoples—in
this case, the Shang, who were much like the Aryans in that they
were pastoralist, warlike nomads who fought on chariots and used
bronze weapons.

The Shang came to stay, absorbed the earlier culture, and
eventually developed laws, money, a system of markets, and more
sophisticated pottery. They also began to build walls to keep out
other barbarians. The Shang dynasty developed a pictographic
system of writing that is the ancestor of modern Chinese script.
During this time, they started using huge bronze cooking vessels,
raising silk for clothes, using cracked bones for divination, and
practicing ancestor worship.

The Shang were ruled by kings and began to hold the kings
responsible for the welfare of the people and the fertility of the
crops. Rituals and proper sacrifices had to be made to ensure the
future crop, so the kings took on a religious function. The Shang
grew millets, wheat, and some rice.

The Shang ruled with a series of loyal vassals, a kind of feudal
system to govern the outlying regions. The Shang also had some
kind of slavery, but there’s a lot of disagreement over it. They also
practiced sacrifice, including of humans.

Another set of invaders, the Chou, arrived from the West around
1000 B.C., perhaps of Turkic origin. The Chou took over all
of the former kingdom and extended it and strengthened the
system of vassalage. The feudal aristocracy had virtual control
in their own region and just owed allegiance, taxes, and men for
building projects or for war to the king. Increasingly, the Chou
centralized their kingdom, claiming that the king was a kind of
semidivine being.

The Chou also apparently introduced the domesticated soybean to
China—or at least popularized it. More importantly, they introduced
cast iron, which can be made into very strong farm tools, weapons,
and cooking vessels.

The most important thing about this dynasty is the earliest
development of a professional bureaucracy of scholars running
this increasingly centralized government. After about 700 B.C.,
these shi became the crucial transmitters of culture from the top
down. They kept records, issued proclamations, and served as
advisors. They organized huge irrigation projects and extended rice
cultivation, and the population grew tremendously.

From about 500 B.C., Chinese civilization really blossomed under
the Chou, and this is regarded as the classical age of ancient Chinese
culture. Poetry and scholarship flourished, in addition to science,
technology, and a detailed understanding of the stars.
59
Lecture 8: Yin and Yang of Classical Chinese Cuisine
60
Probably more important than anything, one thinker in particular is
central to Chinese thought: Confucius. Briefly, Confucius thought
that proper behavior, understanding where you are in the social
hierarchy, and always obeying your superiors—whether they are
parents or political rulers—
not only fosters social
harmony, but also reflects
and
influences
cosmic
harmony. In other words,
if the family or state is in
discord, so are the heavens.

Confucian thought becomes
the ruling principle of
Chinese politics, and the
Confucius (551–479 B.C.E) was an
bureaucrats, or shi, become influential Chinese philosopher.
the crucial functionaries of
the state. The individual, individual desires, and individual rights
are subordinated to the good of the whole and maintaining harmony.
The significance of this for food history is that ritualization of daily
life, including eating, becomes the rule—manners especially.

Another thinker of this period, Laozi (also 6th century B.C.), is the
father of Daoism. The major principle governing Daoist thought is
that individuals should live in harmony with nature and not try to
do things unsuited to their nature or beyond their limitations. It’s
a matter of accepting who you are and what you’re good at and
not trying to be what you’re not. This is basically a philosophy of
inaction, unlike Confucianism.

The importance of Daoism to food history is the emphasis on
simplicity and closeness to nature. Daoist sages promote a simple
lifestyle that will be held as an ideal in Chinese culture and will
stand in opposition to luxuriant, ritualized, and artificial court
culture. These sages also promote longevity regimes and medicines
that will be very important in the Chinese pharmacopoeia.
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.


The next dynasty, Qin (from where we get the word “China”), was
very brief but decisive for history because of the use of cavalry
and the crossbow and bringing freed peasants into the army. This
was the first true Chinese empire, replacing local warlords with
bureaucrats, which is a crucial feature of Chinese cuisine. The Qin
dynasty lasted only from 221 to 207 B.C., but it introduced a form
of government that lasted until the 20th century.

The most important ruler of this period was Shihuangdi. During
this period, 1,400 miles’ worth of scattered, old defensive walls
were linked up to form the Great Wall, the only manmade structure
visible from space. A huge palace complex was built with 700,000
workers forced into labor; weights, measures, and coinage
were all standardized; and many roads and canals were built.
All of this tends to unify China in one culinary culture, despite
regional differences.

The Qin dynasty collapsed just a few years after Shihuangdi’s
death, but the Han dynasty (from about 202 B.C. to 220 A.D., with
one interruption) adopted many of his principles and extended
the empire. The Han dynasty was a period of long-lasting peace,
roughly coterminous with the Pax Romana. Confucian doctrine
became state policy.

China on the whole was probably the most urbanized civilization
on Earth by this time, which meant that an extraordinary level of
organization was required to feed these cities. The state adopted a
rigorous agricultural policy and what has been called the world’s
first green revolution, which involved intense agriculture and
increased yields.

The technological advances of this era are staggering. In terms of
material culture, the Chinese had the most advanced arts of the
ancient world, including the art of cookery. There were new food
technology (including the production of fermented soy products),
new pickling techniques, new noodle technology, and improved
brewing techniques.
61
Lecture 8: Yin and Yang of Classical Chinese Cuisine
Chinese Medicine
 Chinese medicine reaches its high point during the Han dynasty.
There are actually state-salaried physicians, colleges, and
examination boards—the first regulated and professionalized
medical system in the world. The theories formulated in this period
are still practiced today, making this the oldest living medical
system on Earth.
62

The Yellow Emperor’s Esoteric Classic was supposedly written by a
semimythical figure, one of the celestial emperors of ancient times,
but it was actually composed during the Han dynasty. The central
governing principle is the opposition of two basic universal forces,
yin and yang. Yin is female, dark, cold, soft, empty, night; yang is
male, light, warm, firm, full, and day. There needs to be a universal
harmony, and the physical world depends on a balance of these
two forces.

There are also five phases or processes of transformation in
nature (not exactly elements): earth, fire, wood, metal and water.
All physiological functions can be described in terms of these
transformations. Specific foods or drugs aid a particular process,
build up good chi, or promote its flow through the body (which
acupuncture also does).

This is a holistic medicine that takes into account exercise,
air quality, sleep patterns, sexual activity, and diet—to keep
the yin and yang forces in balance, the chi flowing, and the
physiological transformations in good order. An extremely complex
pharmacopoeia goes along with it.

After the collapse of the Han dynasty, there is a period of warring
states for several hundred years—precisely the same time as the
barbarian incursions in the West and the fall of Rome.
Suggested Reading
Anderson, The Food of China.
Chang, Food in Chinese Culture.
Schaefer, Golden Peaches of Samarkand.
Simoons, Food in China.
Swislocki, Culinary Nostalgia.
Culinary Activity
Seasoning a New Wok
Although you can purchase preseasoned and even nonstick woks nowadays,
it is really best to buy a rounded-bottom steel wok and season it yourself. It
will become virtually nonstick because the fat transforms with heat into a
polymer and literally becomes one with the metal surface. This is something
you must do outdoors.
Over an open flame, either wood or a barbecue grill, heat your new wok
for an hour on a high flame until glowing red. Put on sturdy oven mitts.
Then, take a fist-sized lump of pork fat (or any animal fat), and with a pair
of tongs, swirl it around the interior of the work and quickly remove it. This
will create a lot of smoke, so be prepared to step back. Repeat over and over
again until you have a dark, shiny, slick surface inside the wok. Never use
soap on this surface. After stir-frying, simply put the wok in the sink while
still hot, and swirl around a sponge or cloth with a pair of tongs and hot
water. Dry thoroughly, and wipe on some oil to prevent rusting. You will be
amazed how wonderfully food will cook on this surface without sticking,
even though the technology is centuries old.
Using Your Wok
We usually think of a wok in terms of stir-frying, but it is actually used to
braise, boil, steam, deep-fry, and practically perform any procedure in the
Chinese canon. Stir-frying is still classic, but it demands just a little practice
and know-how. First of all, the wok should be heated, over a very high
flame. Ideally, you will have a burner that will steady the rounded bottom or
63
a wok ring. A flat-bottomed wok is a waste of time; you might as well just
use a pan. All of your ingredients should be cut up ahead of time, into thin
pieces that will cook very quickly. The actual cooking should only take a few
minutes, which means not only less fuel used but, in a professional kitchen,
rapid service.
Lecture 8: Yin and Yang of Classical Chinese Cuisine
If using meat, marinate it first in soy sauce, rice wine, ginger, garlic, sesame
oil, and cornstarch—or whatever you like. The cornstarch will not only act
as a thickener in the end, but will also seal the surface of the meat when it
goes into the hot wok. Keep your cut-up vegetables separate. You can use
bok choy, mushrooms, bean sprouts, and carrots—again, whatever strikes
your fancy.
When your wok is red hot (it will smoke a little), pour in oil—peanut or
neutral vegetable oil is best—and immediately add your meat so that it sears.
Wait a minute before you begin to toss. This should be done with a Chinese
spatula, which has a metal end and a long shaft ending in a wooden handle.
One hand should be on the handle of the wok (use a dish towel if it’s a short,
ring-type handle) and the other on your spatula. The idea is to tilt the wok
slightly and toss the ingredients up. When browned lightly, remove the meat
to a bowl, and add vegetables to the wok, using the same procedure. Add
a little more oil if necessary. You want to sear these quickly, which won’t
happen if you overcrowd the surface of the wok. Then, add the meat back
in again, and finish with a little soy sauce, perhaps rice wine, and some
broth. These are usually kept in little bowls next to the wok and added with
a ladle. When the ingredients all come together, move them to a bowl and
immediately rinse out and scour your wok with hot water and return to the
fire to start another dish, or dry and set aside if you’re done. Serve the dish
with white rice.
64
Dining in Republican and Imperial Rome
Lecture 9
I
n this lecture, you will learn about ancient Roman dining habits and
how they changed over time—as did the Roman people themselves.
You will start by learning about the simple warlike Romans in the
Republican period; then, you will trace the expansion of the Roman Empire
and how food came to be a marker of social class, especially when only the
wealthiest of Romans could afford exotic luxuries. Finally, you will examine
a cookbook written specifically for those who wanted to flaunt their wealth
and sophistication.
Republican Frugality
 The early Romans were an austere, self-sufficient, and warlike
people whose food consisted primarily of staples associated with
the Mediterranean diet: wheat and barley eaten as pulmentum (that
is, the original version of polenta), cheese, olive oil, vegetables, and
a little meat. There was little social differentiation based on diet;
most people ate pretty much the same basic, simple, and locally
grown foods.

We get a good example of what Romans in the Republican period
were like from an agricultural manual written by Marcus Porcius
Cato, otherwise known as Cato the Elder. Cato is infamous in
Roman history as the official censor of the state, who—even after
two crushing victories against the Carthaginians, their dire enemy—
insisted that the Carthaginians be completely obliterated. In fact,
Carthage was destroyed in the Third Punic War by sowing salt into
the soil so that nothing would ever grow again.

Why would a Roman statesman write a book about agriculture? It
is partly because the Romans fought seasonally, returning to their
farms for sowing and harvesting. Being a patrician, people of Cato’s
social class would often inherit large sums of money or might earn
a pension after retiring from military service. For the early Romans,
65
Lecture 9: Dining in Republican and Imperial Rome
the safest investment was in land, and Cato’s manual describes how
to plant vineyards, olive groves, and fruit trees and how to grow
crops that could easily be transported to cities for profit. However,
the foods are simple, uncomplicated staples.

The few recipes he offers are for sacrificial cakes. One in particular
is called placenta, which comes from the Greek word plakounta,
which just means a flat cake. Cato’s placenta is essentially sheets of
dough layered with fresh cheese and soaked in honey.

Rich and poor in the Republican period ate basically the same
frugal diet. They had an inordinate fondness for cabbage as food
and medicine. For the early Romans, food was basically just fuel.
No particular foods were associated with social class, and there
were few luxuries by which people could flaunt their wealth.
Social Climbers and the Old Elite of Imperial Rome
 As the Roman Empire expanded, and especially after conquering
Greece and much of the eastern Mediterranean, these simple
people came in contact with cultures not only much older and more
sophisticated, but also much wealthier. These older cultures had
also been long addicted to luxuries and spices imported from Asia.
66

For the first time, the Romans were connected to ancient trade
routes that brought them pepper and cinnamon from India and even
products from the Far East like citron, ginger, and cloves. Because
these were expensive imports, they were excellent markers of social
status—only the wealthiest people could afford them. However, in
the minds of many Romans, contact with the East had made this
once-fierce people soft.

Naturally, as Rome grew, its administration expanded, its cities
swelled to enormous proportions, and most importantly, its armies
teemed with fresh recruits to protect the borders of the vast empire.
Huge plantations, or latifundia, worked by slave labor, provided the
wheat, which was milled on a massive scale. It was eaten in the form
of risen bread, which was doled out by the state as a form of welfare.

With such great demand for food and extensive trade, there was
also widespread speculation in foodstuffs. This included both basic
staples as well as luxuries, such as the infamous fish sauce that went
into most Roman dishes called garum, which is not unlike nuoc
mam, a fish sauce still made in Southeast Asia.

They also planted vineyards and made wine of such quality that
it could be kept for decades. In a boom economy like this, great
fortunes could be easily made and lost. There was a remarkable
degree of social mobility as well, with examples of people even
starting as slaves, buying their freedom, and eventually becoming
wealthy in trade.

When people suddenly make a lot of money and are able to rise
socially, they naturally try to imitate their superiors. They begin to
dress like them, learn to speak properly, buy expensive villas, and
most importantly, eat the same foods as the wealthy do—because
only the richest of people can afford exotic luxuries and expert cooks
to prepare them. Food is an unmistakable marker of social class.

For the ancient Romans, throwing dinner parties was the most
important social function, where they made contacts, cut business
deals, and discussed politics. Of utmost importance were who was
invited, what was served, and how rare and expensive the ingredients
were. The Romans had very precise dining rituals as well.
A Cookbook for Imperial Extravagance
 The most famous cookbook of classical antiquity is De re
Coquinaria by Apicius, whose identity has been a matter of
speculation for centuries. There was an actual person named
Marcus Gavius Apicius who lived in the first century A.D. and
was known for his exquisite taste and for the extravagant sums he
spent on food. Whether a real figure or not, Apicius’s name was
universally associated with magnificent dining, extravagance, and
profligacy—if not outright gluttony.
67
Lecture 9: Dining in Republican and Imperial Rome
68

The recipes in the cookbook, though gathered several centuries
after the historical Apicius lived, nonetheless bear witness to this
reputation for lavishness. There are directions for making boiled
ostrich served in a sauce of pepper, mint, cumin, celery seeds,
dates, honey vinegar, raisin wine, garum, and oil and thickened with
starch. This recipe has a wild juxtaposition of flavors, with sweet,
sour, savory, spicy, and salty flavors all competing for attention
in one dish. The ingredients also come from the far-flung corners
of the Roman Empire and beyond: African ostrich, Indian pepper,
dates from the Middle East, and garum from Spain.

What could this odd flavor combination possibly mean, apart from
revealing the seriously jaded palates of Roman diners? Foremost,
it is designed to impress with wealth and sophistication. As a
cookbook, it also teaches how to cook dishes that are unfamiliar.
In other words, this cookbook seems designed precisely to appeal
to social aspirants who want to get it all right at their next dinner
party. Someone who owned the cookbook would presumably
dictate precise directions for these dishes to their cooks, who were
probably illiterate.

Recipes include stuffed dormice, sow’s womb, and flamingo
tongues—things perhaps appreciated precisely for their grossout factor as well as their rarity. The vast majority of recipes also
feature the ingenuity of the cook in transforming ingredients into
something completely new. One of the most shocking recipes is for
a rose patina made of pounded brains and rose petals steamed with
eggs in a shallow custard-like tart.

There are also pretty ordinary ingredients and simple recipes in
Apicius’s cookbook. Nonetheless, it seems like the appearance of
the oddities suggests an audience eager to try out strange recipes to
impress dinner guests—social aspirants who will be judged by the
food they serve. Thus, they must choose foods that clearly denote
status. Rare and unusual ingredients and complex cooking methods
serve as ingenious tricks to titillate guests.

The following is an example of a recipe, which even bears the name
of Apicius, that will give you a good sense of Roman elite taste.
It’s called minutal Apicianum, or Apician stew. It starts with a list
of ingredients that go into a pot: oleum, liquamen, vinum, porrum
capitatum, mentam, pisciculos, esiciola minuta, testiculos caponum,
glandulas porcellinas, which translates as “oil, garum, wine, leeks,
mint, small fish, capon’s testicles, suckling pig sweetbreads.”

The translated recipe continues: “Cook all this together. Pound
pepper, lovage, cilantro, or coriander seed, moisten with garum,
add a bit of honey, and some of its own broth, temper with wine
and honey. Heat it up, and break in tracta to thicken, stir it up and
sprinkle on pepper and serve.”

The tracta are a kind of ancestor of pasta, except the thin sheets
of dough are baked and then crumbled into the stew to thicken
it—enough so that it holds together. To analyze a recipe like this,
you have to consider what diners would have thought about it. In
modern times, we have explicit associations with certain foods,
and the Romans would have had similar associations. Some
may be comfort foods while others are reserved for holidays and
celebrations. Some foods we associate with romantic dinners and
others with specific places.

Many of us cringe when we think of eating rooster testicles, but if
we look at what Romans wrote about them, we find that they did
not think testicles were strange at all. In fact, the physician Galen
says that rooster testicles are the best in every respect, especially
from grain-fed roosters.

The ingredients in this recipe were anything but weird. Suckling
pig sweetbreads may also sound odd, but it is actually very mild
and delicate. Likewise, the small fish were considered very elegant.
When sauced with herbs and spices, wine, honey, and fish sauce,
the dish actually becomes a very interesting mélange of flavors and
textures, similar to something you might find in a Chinese restaurant
today. Most importantly, it’s sophisticated and complex—and very
69
different from what ordinary Roman plebeians would be eating. It
is a marker of distinction.
Suggested Reading
Adamson and Segan, eds., Entertaining.
Aelius Lampridius, Life of Heliogabalus.
Apicius, De re Coquinaria.
Bober, Art, Culture, and Cuisine.
Cato, On Farming.
Fass, Around the Roman Table.
Juvenal, Satires.
Martial, Epigrams.
Lecture 9: Dining in Republican and Imperial Rome
Petronius, Satyricon.
Culinary Activity
Minutal of Apricots
This dish captures the wide range of flavors that were popular in ancient
Rome—what we might call sweet and sour, though it is actually even more
complex than that. The ingredients aren’t particularly rare or exotic, but the
dish would have been considered very fashionable and elegant. Tracta are
perhaps the ancestor of pasta, a kind of flat cracker that was crumbled into
stews as a thickener. They are also called laganae, which is etymologically
related to lasagna. Today, you can use plain crackers, crumbled up. For
garum, you can use Southeast Asian fish sauce, such as nuoc mam or nam
pla. For the raisin wine, Marsala is okay (or any sweet, fortified wine). To
“temper” means to balance the flavors and consistency. Obviously, because
there are no measurements, all of the ingredients should be added at
your discretion.
70
Add in a pot oil, garum, wine, chopped scallions, cooked pork shoulder cut
into cubes. When all is cooked pound pepper, cumin, dried mint, dill, and
drizzle in honey, garum, raisin wine, vinegar, and a little pork broth, temper
it, then add pitted fresh apricots, let it simmer until they are cooked through.
Break up a tracta to thicken it, sprinkle with pepper and serve it up.
71
Early Christianity—Food Rituals and Asceticism
Lecture 10
J
Lecture 10: Early Christianity—Food Rituals and Asceticism
ust as the vast Roman Empire swept over most of the ancient world, it
also conquered the Holy Land and incorporated it as a province called
Palestine. The Jews were still performing ritual sacrifices, but they were
now very much Hellenized and were even speaking Greek or Aramaic. In
this lecture, you will learn how certain practices of the Jewish faith started
to change, making the Romans uneasy, and how Jesus tried to revitalize the
Jewish religion, getting into some trouble in the process.
Jews in the Roman Empire
 The Jews held a tenuous position within the Roman Empire. On
the one hand, they were allowed relative autonomy; they had their
own king (Herod, in this case), who was a puppet of the governor
(Pontius Pilate, in this case). They were granted autonomy partly
because they had vast mercantile links across the Mediterranean
and because Jews made up a good proportion of the entire empire.
On the other hand, the Jews were monotheistic, and they would
not participate in the official Roman rites, which recognized the
emperor as a semidivine being.
72

Jewish practice had changed a great deal since the days of the
kingdoms. For example, many Jews lived nowhere near the temple,
so a new kind of worship arose that centered on the synagogue (a
Greek term that basically means school), in which Jewish scholars
(rabbis) study the Torah and the newer commentaries on the Bible
called the Talmud. Sacrifices still take place in Jerusalem, but a
different kind of worship happens elsewhere.

Another important point is that these synagogues also developed
different forms of Judaism, groups who wanted to escape what they
considered the corruption of the Pharisees (the orthodox priests
running the temple) and return to the original intentions of God.
One of these groups was the Essenes, who were bound by mutual
respect and love, not by a physical building where they sacrifice
animals. In other words, the rituals seem to have become empty
now. They also studied the Bible intensely, and the Dead Sea
Scrolls are from one of these desert communes—the Qumran sect.

Jewish practice was changing, and there was a great deal of
intellectual and religious ferment that was really making the
Romans edgy. It is into this milieu that Joshua ben Joseph (Jesus)
appears and basically has yet another plan for revitalizing the
Jewish religion by scrapping the legalistic practice of the Pharisees
and replacing it with simple rules that people can follow and
that will actually make them better people, and he told neat little
parables that they could understand.

Jesus’s parables were often about food or about agricultural tasks
so that the people he was preaching to—simple shepherds, farmers,
and fishermen—are familiar with the situations. There’s the story of
the landowner hiring workers for his vineyard, and everyone gets
paid the same amount, even the people who show up late. This is
a parable that preaches that people should not begrudge what other
people get.

There was another Jewish tradition that Jesus eventually came to
be associated with: that one day a moshiach, or messiah, would
come to initiate a new era in human history. In the Jewish tradition,
he would be a person sent to teach and change ritual practice once
again—like another Moses, a messenger from God.

The other side of Jesus’s career is a little harder to explain. Apart
from the stories, Jesus was also a faith healer and miracle worker,
and most of his miracles either involve healing the sick or feeding
people, which makes him a great candidate for the downtrodden
and oppressed Jews.

Everything that Jesus is saying is very socially subversive; it’s not
the sort of thing the authorities want to hear (neither the Jewish
priests nor the Romans). However, at no point did Jesus ever
73
Dietary Changes after Jesus
 Jesus makes his way to Jerusalem with his 12 disciples and causes
a row in the temple by chasing out the moneylenders. He gets in
all sorts of trouble, and he happens to be there during a holy week.
The head priest Caiaphas
doesn’t want any trouble with
the authorities, so he bribes
one of Jesus’s followers,
Judas Iscariot, to point out
which one is Jesus so they can
arrest him.
74

That night, the whole crew is
celebrating Passover. Jesus
stops in the middle of the
Seder and says to his disciples
that the bread they are eating
could be his body, and the
wine could be his blood, so
when he is gone, remember
him when they eat and drink. Judas, one of Jesus’s disciples,
This event turns out to be the betrayed Jesus.
central ritual or sacrament of
the new religion—the communion, or Eucharist (the Greek word
for it). In all the early churches, they began to perform this ritual
of eating and drinking, but it wasn’t entirely clear yet what was
happening during it.

Meanwhile, the disciples are all drunk, lying around in a garden.
Judas betrays Jesus, and Jesus won’t answer the high priest’s
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
Lecture 10: Early Christianity—Food Rituals and Asceticism
propose breaking away completely and forming an entirely new
religion. He never claimed to be divine, either. He was called “son
of man,” which is basically another name for “messiah.” Explaining
that he was the son of God was the work of his disciples. He was a
Jewish reformer, preaching to Jews. Only later, with Paul, was the
religion even opened up for gentiles to join.
questions. At this point, Jesus is being called “king of the Jews,”
so they hand him over to the Roman governor Pontius Pilate, and
he asks the assembled crowd whether he should let Jesus, now a
prisoner, go because it is custom to sometimes do so during the
holidays. The crowd, thinking that Pontius Pilate really doesn’t
want to let him go and not wanting to upset the Romans, says that
Jesus should be crucified.

For later Christians, this act of crucifixion completely replaces the
ritual sacrifice in the temple. Jesus was called the “lamb of God,”
and his self-sacrifice replaces the sacrifice of the scapegoat—but
it serves exactly the same function. People do bad things, and
someone has to be punished. In this case, Jesus gets punished for
everyone else’s sins.

All of the other laws of the Old Testament, including the bizarre
dietary laws, are now changed. Before, the Jews needed all of those
specific laws, but because they were now following the letter of the
law instead of its spirit, it is time to do away with them all. What
God wants is morality, not a kosher kitchen. Now, it’s okay to eat
anything, and all of the other laws are transformed, too.

This religion caught on like wildfire in the Roman Empire.
Eventually, they had to figure out a way to organize these new
communities. They started in secret, and they were actively
persecuted, but they did begin to organize in physical buildings, or
ecclesia, overseen by a bishop, or episcopus.

This is the slow development of the institution of the church as
a religious authority, with priests acting as mediators between
ordinary people and God and, eventually, a father or pope—the
bishop of Rome—as the spiritual head of the church, at least in the
West. In the East, they had patriarchs. Persecutions became more
intense; often, people willingly accepted martyrdom. However,
more and more people joined despite the persecution.
75
Lecture 10: Early Christianity—Food Rituals and Asceticism
Food Rituals in the Early Church
 The most important food ritual that develops in the early church is
the fast. Judaism had fasts, but in Christianity, they become a lot
more important. The idea behind it is that the body is really not
important; it’s just a temporary dwelling place for the much more
important, and immortal, soul. In fact, the body is a distraction,
so if you can mortify the flesh by denying the body its physical
urges—such as eating, sex, and sleeping regularly—then you can
make the soul all the more strong.
76

From an early date, Christianity begins to stress asceticism,
something foreign to Judaism. Among the early Christians, there
were heroic ascetics, people who went out into the desert and fasted
(like Saint Anthony) and stayed there for years.

According to the sayings of the church fathers, the early ascetics
tended to live alone, but gradually, larger communities, or
monasteries, develop. These orders entailed communal living,
celibacy, strict obedience, and sometimes vows of silence. Mostly,
they pray, but they also stay up all night and eat very little food.
They go out of their way to suffer, and they vent their pent-up anger
and frustration on themselves. This is sadistic self-torture for people
who have nothing else to control in life.

Gluttony becomes one of the seven deadly sins, and it will imperil
your mortal soul. Gluttons are perpetually stuffed until they burst
and then become whole again, and it repeats for an eternity. Food
has now become sin. There’s also now an explicit idea of a devil or
demons tempting people to commit sin.

Although these acts of ascetic heroism are exceptional, several
ritual fasts eventually became ingrained in the Christian calendar,
most importantly during the period of Lent (from Ash Wednesday
to Easter). Fasting did not actually mean total abstinence from food;
in fact, it rarely does. It meant abstaining from animal food (with
the exception of fish) or any animal product, including milk, eggs,
and butter.
Suggested Reading
Chadwick, Western Asceticism.
Feeley-Harnik, The Lord’s Table.
Grimm, From Feasting to Fasting.
Hill, Eating to Excess.
Shaw, Burden of the Flesh.
Culinary Activity
Fasting Exercise
This is an odd thing to try at home, but trying it can have very interesting
results. If you fast for very long periods, you will feel lightheaded and may
even hallucinate. This may very well be the source of some early ascetic’s
visions. Even a short fast can be a challenge as well as a way to expand your
sensory perception. In many respects, our taste buds, like all of our senses,
are dulled by overstimulation. Think of this as a temporary deprivation
chamber to reawaken your taste buds. As a purely gastronomic exercise, go
an entire 24 hours without any food or water. Prepare a food you normally
eat for dinner, and consume it slowly and mindfully. Did you appreciate the
taste more than you normally would? Does it taste different—perhaps more
intense? Which particular flavors do you notice as standing out?
77
Europe’s Dark Ages and Charlemagne
Lecture 11
T
Lecture 11: Europe’s Dark Ages and Charlemagne
he term “Dark Ages” has fallen out of favor with most historians, or at
least its use has been restricted to a much more narrow chronological
period, spanning roughly from about the 450s to the 800s and the time
of Charlemagne. However, in this lecture, the Dark Ages apply to the entire
early Middle Ages—from the fall of Rome to about 1000 A.D.—because
Europe is pretty bleak economically, agriculturally, and scientifically during
this time. In this lecture, you will learn that in most endeavors, including
cuisine and food culture, this period is pretty dark.
Germanic Tribes
 The Roman Empire was showing signs of internal weakness
long before 410 A.D., but that’s when barbarian armies—the
Visigoths, under their leader, Alaric—actually sack the city. Roman
weakness was due to many complex factors, but it mostly had
to do with overextending the empire and using barbarian tribes
along the frontier to protect Roman territory. That meant that they
learned Roman fighting tactics and military technology and could
eventually use it against the Romans themselves.
78

These barbaric tribes also became Romanized. When these
semibarbarians on the edges themselves were threatened from
outside invaders, such as the Huns, it made perfect sense for them
to turn to Rome for help, which was denied. Being basically forced
onto Roman soil, they liked what they found there and decided to
take it, which created a moment of extreme weakness, during which
all sorts of other tribes came pouring in.

The entire Roman Empire was subsumed by Germanic tribes, who
are basically in a state of culture comparable to other warriorpastoralists—such as the Aryans, Shang, and Mycenaeans—but
were 2,000 years later. However, these Germanic tribes were
not nomadic. They did practice agriculture. Their culture values
strength, courage, and success in battle above anything else.

The Goths were divided into two groups: the Visigoths, who settled
eventually in Spain, and the Ostrogoths, who ruled Italy for a while.
The Vandals established themselves northern Africa. The Franks
carved out a kingdom over what is today France and Germany.
The Angles and Saxons invaded Britain. The Lombards established
themselves in northern Italy. All of these tribes mixed with the
earlier Roman populations in the provinces, who were themselves
of mixed blood, so in terms of blood and ethnicity, as well as
culture, Germanic is mixed with Roman/Christian.

These tribes all had kings, but as far as any consistent control over
the countryside goes, they were very haphazard administrations. For
all practical purposes, there was near anarchy in most of Europe;
everyone who had weapons basically had to fend for himself or
herself. As the infrastructure of the empire fell apart, so did trade,
agriculture, and the entire marketing system. The 5th century A.D.
was also a period of widespread famine, a major plague, and a
remarkable decline in the population.

It’s not that there was consistent famine for centuries, but when
a crop failure hit, there was absolutely no backup. There were
no grain reserves kept by the state and no trade to supply grain
from other regions. People had to become more resourceful at
finding food in the forests and swamps. During this time, there is
a dramatic increase in the number of wild species of plants and
animals consumed, especially as the countryside became deserted.
People moved onto only the best land to cultivate and abandoned
the hillsides and more difficult terrain, most of which returned
to wilderness.

In every way that the Greeks and Romans valued civilized cities
surrounded by miles of well-tilled farms, orchards, and stockyards,
the barbarians valued the wild forest, hunting, fishing, gathering
79
Lecture 11: Europe’s Dark Ages and Charlemagne
wild fruits, and letting their herds of pigs forage for themselves in
the forests on acorns or beechnuts.

Above all else, for the Germanic tribes, meat was the central
element in the diet rather than bread and grain. They didn’t even
have a major staple grain crop. Instead of wine, they drank cider
from fermented apples, mead from honey, or beer (for which they
did grow barley). Drinking beer was not just a matter of refreshment
or relaxation; it was the central social ritual among the Germans.

Instead of oil, they used butter from their cattle or lard. This has a
lot to do with geography and climate, but also with major cultural
differences. There was this perception among early medieval
writers that the barbarians not only ate more wild food, but they
also ate more uncooked, raw meats and uncooked foods—or rough
foods that were difficult to digest, like turnips and leeks.
The Mixture of Christian and Germanic Ideals
 Grain, wine, and oil had to be grown for sacramental purposes in
Christianity, and it was usually the monasteries that maintained
vineyards left over from classical times. Monks at these monasteries
are the only people preserving even the last shreds of classical
medicine, which has also now been mixed with Germanic folk
remedies. They are also among the few people who still know how
to graft fruit trees and cultivate wine grapes.
80

The culture of wine did not replace that of beer overnight,
especially because the Germans also used beer as a sacrifice. The
Christians had a hard time getting these newly converted Germans
to give up their eating and drinking habits. This is especially the
case—and, in fact, a sticking point until the 16th century—when
they institute a compulsory fast for Lent (which means no animal
or dairy products).

The early Christians only had voluntary fasts. Apostles fasted on
Friday to commemorate the death of Jesus on the day, but there
were no universal fasting periods across all of Christendom until
the 4th century. The fasts are not that burdensome for southern
European Christians, who can easily get vegetables and fish to eat,
but it was both culturally and economically burdensome for the
Germans in the north to fast.

The idea of Lent, Friday fast, and all of the other fast days meant
that the whole idea of moderation, balanced diet, and seasonal
adjustment according to weather and exercise that existed among
Greco-Roman culture now gave way to a culture of fast and feast.
Periods of want set by the church contrasted with periods of gross
overindulgence. However, in stark contrast, the idea of competitive
feasting is built into Germanic society.

There are basically three opposed ideals: the quasi-ascetic
Christians, the meat-eating Germanic tribes, and the classical
ideal of moderation—all of which become an integral part of the
culture. The fast/feast mentality is introduced among the Germanic
Christian kingdoms, and it extends throughout the social hierarchy.

Another interesting feature of this mix of cultures is that wheat
cultivation was maintained where it was feasible in Italy and Spain,
but beyond that, only the wealthiest people could afford it, and fine
white bread became a kind of status symbol (along with drinking
wine). However, the rest of the Germanic populace ate rye, which
was practically unknown to the Romans but thrives in the colder
northern climate. Rye alone—or mixed with spelt—makes really
dark, dense bread. From this point on, the color of bread will be a
matter of social distinction.
Charlemagne’s Influence on Food
 Charlemagne is the most interesting ruler of the early Middle
Ages. The Franks emerged as the dominant tribe, then eventually
a kingdom, and finally an empire for various reasons—among
the most important is that most of the other Germanic kingdoms
collapsed. Only the Franks built a large state, beginning with Clovis
in the late 400s and the Merovingian dynasty, which descended
from him.
81
The system of rule they initiated was the ancestor of feudalism
and had lots of semi-independent dukedoms that involve fealty
as well as “counties.” Rather than the large slave-run latifundia
of Roman times, the model that emerges is called serfdom, which
involves very small holdings farmed
by people legally bound to the soil,
who have to work a certain amount
of time on their lord’s demesne and
pay various taxes to the lord.

Charlemagne is important to the
history of food because he issued
orders to his leading vassals to
plant various foods throughout his
empire, presumably so that he could
be supplied on his campaigns. In
fact, certain vegetables were directly
reintroduced to Europe through his
sponsorship, as well as fruits that are
harder to maintain and take time.

Charlemagne also sponsored setting Charlemagne (747–814) was
up fish ponds that could be stocked Holy Roman emperor from
year 800 until his death.
with fish like carp and trout and
ordered that all of his farms keep 100 hens and 30 geese so that he
could have fresh eggs on his campaigns. He also tried to regulate
the food trades.

Charlemagne almost hated his doctors because they told him to
eat less roast meat. He customarily had four courses as well as the
roasts, which the hunters brought in on long spits. We also know that
they used big cauldrons to boil food, which leads to the assumption
that they made pretty simple fare: boiled pulses or grains, bread,
wine or beer, stews, and some vegetables.

The fare had to be simple because there were no trade routes,
which meant no more spices. There was also no time to develop
© Photos.com/Thinkstock.
Lecture 11: Europe’s Dark Ages and Charlemagne
82

a sophisticated cuisine. There was a very small group of nobles,
and everyone else were serfs. There was no social mobility
at all. In addition, the wealthiest people were usually out on
campaigns fighting.

Charlemagne’s court is really just one bright spot on an otherwise
totally bleak several hundred years. After his death, the empire was
divided up among heirs, with each smaller kingdom struggling but
never as powerful. Recurrent famines, continued depopulation, and
more invasions by a new set of barbarians (Vikings) meant that
Europe didn’t even begin to get back on its feet until around the
year 1000, which is when things begin to change.
Suggested Reading
Anthimus, De Observatione Ciborum.
Camporesi, Bread of Dreams.
Montanari, The Culture of Food.
Culinary Activity
Service à la Middle Ages: Eating with Your Hands
Evidently, many people think that eating with your hands is inherently
more pleasurable than distancing yourself from your food with a fork and
knife—if you consider the popularity of foods like hamburgers, hot dogs,
and pizza. However, these foods shield us from getting very messy with buns
or a crust to hold onto. Imagine eating truly messy food without cutlery.
This exercise is designed to help you appreciate the tactile qualities of food
directly, exactly as they would have in the Middle Ages. It is messy, but it
need not be barbaric. In fact, eating barbecued ribs comes very close. For
this experiment, try grilling something that would normally need to be cut
with a sharp knife—a steak or thick pork chop, or a joint of mutton would be
perfect. Plop it down on a thin slice of bread set directly on the table. Pick it
up with your hands, and chomp away. There is a strange satisfaction, perhaps
primal in a Freudian sense, of eating flesh this way. Can it be that because we
evolved eating with our hands and teeth that there really is something hard83
Lecture 11: Europe’s Dark Ages and Charlemagne
wired in us to enjoy eating this way? Or have we become so acculturated
by cutlery that it is hard to enjoy food this way? To answer this question,
consider the following: Did you try this experiment alone, or with others?
84
Islam—A Thousand and One Nights of Cooking
Lecture 12
W
hile Europe was languishing in the so-called Dark Ages, there
arose a new religion—Islam—in what is now Saudi Arabia that
would spread faster than any religion before it and that would
bring a whole new way of thinking about food, and a whole new culinary
style, to a huge expanse of land that would eventually stretch from Spain to
India and even beyond to southeastern Asia. In this lecture, you will learn
how the culture of Islam became so dazzling despite its humble origins.
The Expansion of Islam
 Islam arose among nomadic peoples, the Bedouin, of the deserts
of Arabia. These desert regions—which are essentially endless
drifts of sand with practically no water or vegetation and, of course,
intense heat—are completely different than any of the agriculturally
fertile regions. There’s also no state, per se; there are only tribal
leaders, or sheikhs.

These nomadic peoples had such a rugged way of life that they
really didn’t even have private property; the herds that they
migrated with were owned communally by the tribe. Because there
is so little pasture, they have to continually move from oasis to
oasis, where there were usually small towns that they could trade
with or steal from. This was also a warrior society, and power and
prestige depended on how much you could steal from passing
caravan routes.

Between these vast deserts there were, however, a few cities on the
periphery. They usually existed only because there was water, and
many grew into sizeable settlements, often containing a holy shrine.
They were also incidentally good places to do trade because they
served as sanctuaries, where rival tribes weren’t allowed to fight. It
was in one of these—Mecca—that Islam arose.
85
Lecture 12: Islam—A Thousand and One Nights of Cooking

Unlike the founders of most religions, we actually know a great
deal about the life of the prophet Muhammad, who was a merchant
that was often found wandering out in the hills, where he began to
have visions and started to realize that he is the messenger of God
and that there is only one God.

This society was pagan and polytheistic at this time, but there were
Jewish and Christian populations in Mecca, and his ideas were very
deeply influenced by theirs. In fact, Islam considers them earlier
prophecies of the same God, Allah. Islam is just the last and most
complete religion. Most importantly, Islam is monotheistic.

Muhammad started to get followers—a lot of them in Mecca.
Starting on September 24, 622 (the first day of the Islamic calendar
in the Western calendar), everything he said was written down
and became the Koran. Islam spread like wildfire throughout
the peninsula, and the armies of Islam converted the peoples it
conquered through force. This was not a religion of peace, but
many people willingly joined.

Islam has an explicit vision of the pleasures that await the faithful
in paradise. Judaism doesn’t have that at all, and Christianity
only vaguely has that. The Muslim paradise is laden with fragrant
flowers, running streams, and cushions to rest on while you much
on exotic fruits and sweets. Every sense is stimulated. Unlike so
many other religions, there is no stigma against sensual pleasure—
because that’s what heaven is all about.

There is no ascetic tradition in Islam, with the exception of a few
mystical sects. For the most part, this is a religion that encourages
the arts (with the exception of depictions of God, which is idolatry),
architecture, music, and especially complex cooking—which is
raised to a fine art.
Islamic Food Prohibitions and Customs
 Islam has some food prohibitions that are like the Jewish ones
in certain respects, but Islamic food prohibitions are much less
86
complicated. Pork is forbidden in Islam as in Judaism, but no
other meats, except birds of prey and carnivorous animals, are
forbidden. Food sacrificed to pagan idols is also forbidden, as
it is in Christianity. There is also the blood taboo: Animals must
be ritually slaughtered, painlessly, as a prayer is said over them,
basically thanking the animal for giving its life to sustain humans.
What is unique, however, is the prohibition against alcohol. The
prohibition is hard to explain, but presumably, it’s difficult to focus
on prayer when you’re tipsy. Not all Muslim countries strictly
observe this, though. In some regions, they still grew grapes for
wine, so there was no strict enforcement by destroying vineyards,
but devout Muslims were supposed to abstain.

There are also fasts in Islam that are a bit more rigorous than fasts in
Judaism. Islamic fasts are not just periods of abstention from meat,
as in Christianity. The devout Muslim abstains from all food and
drink during daylight hours during the entire month of Ramadan,
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.

During the month of Ramadan, devout Muslims fast from sunrise to sunset
each day.
87
Lecture 12: Islam—A Thousand and One Nights of Cooking
the ninth month on a lunar calendar. In many places, they prepare
very elaborate meals during that time, so you can actually gain
weight during Ramadan, but it is nonetheless considered a hardship
to fast during the day.
88

Muslim customs, rather than law, also dictate that people eat sitting
on the floor for the evening meal in Ramadan with a tray in front
of them containing food, from which they eat using three fingers of
the right hand that have been washed. There are no utensils, apart
from spoons to drink soups and such. In most of the Islamic world,
food would be accompanied by a flat bread used to scoop up or grab
food, so it’s not unrefined at all. In fact, there’s a kind of immediate
tactile sensuality and connection to the food when eating with your
hands rather than cold metal utensils.

In the Islamic world, there is also something that seems to be an
inheritance of the Berber custom of sharing food with any stranger
who appears at your door—a kind of necessity in the desert, but
it translated into a kind of effusive hospitality. There’s also an
implication of equality because everyone is seated around a low
table (with no one at the head of the table) with round plates of
appetizers, or meze.

Most Muslims can eat with whomever they like, or sometimes only
with people of the book, but there are some sects who would only
eat with other Muslims and would only be served food prepared
by Muslims.

Some foods take on a kind of semisacred status. The date is one
of these, probably because it formed a major part of the diet in
Arabia, but it’s used in all sorts of rituals and festivities. There is
also great attention paid to mutton, which is probably the most
important meat. Fat from the mutton tail was considered a delicacy,
as was camel’s hump and camel’s milk. Long after Muslims had
spread out of the Arabian peninsula, these remained elite foods—
associated with Arabia and the prophet and actively sought out by
the aristocracy or people who wanted to eat like them.
Persian Culture and Cuisine
 As Islam expanded, it took over regions that were part of the
Byzantine Empire, whose people were the direct heirs to GrecoRoman civilization. The Muslims adopted their science, medicine,
technology, and literature; translated everything into Arabic; and
became an extraordinarily learned civilization.

The Muslims added to Greek science in particular, and they were
reading Aristotle centuries before anyone in Europe could read
it, so for the first time, there was a real expansion of Greek ideas.
Muslims not only tolerated Jews and Christians in their realms, but
there was also a fruitful interchange of ideas, especially in medicine
and literature.

The other civilization they rolled over were the Persians, at this
point ruled by the Sassanid dynasty, who had been fighting with the
Byzantines for decades. Both were pretty much exhausted, which
is partly why Islam spread so easily into these regions. Islam also
absorbed Persian culture, which had its own long and rich culinary
traditions.

The dominant style of cooking in the Islamic world is also that
of the Abbasid caliphate in Baghdad. We don’t really know much
about the earlier Sassanid cuisine, but there’s extensive documents
from Islamic times, so it’s hard to say how much of it goes
back earlier.

Distinctive Persian cuisine of this period favors young meats—like
lamb, kid, and veal— much more than mature ones. These were
usually roasted or fried in butter or oil and cut into small pieces
that you could scoop up. Meat was also often cooked with sugar or
some kind of syrup. The idea of marinating meats in sour sauces
with a lot of spices is also prominent in Persian cuisine. Chicken is
probably the most frequently eaten kind of fowl.

Perhaps the two most important foods that are spread from one
end to another are rice, cultivated in Spain for the first time, and
89
Lecture 12: Islam—A Thousand and One Nights of Cooking
spinach. Eggplant is also very common. Fruit, such as apricots,
peaches, and grapes dried into raisins, is used in cooking. There’s
also extensive use of crushed nuts in cooking, especially almonds
and pine nuts, to make dishes creamy.

Persian cuisine excels at sweets. For example, they invented
marzipan, which is made from almond paste and sugar and can
be molded into little shapes. The Persians also invented iced fruit
drinks, such as sherbet, as well as the ancestors of ice creams.

The Muslims also initiated what can undoubtedly be called an
agricultural great leap forward—if not an agricultural revolution.
They used new irrigation practices and new ways of intensively
cultivating fruits and vegetables—practices they wouldn’t start
using in Europe for hundreds of years.

This cuisine has all of the prerequisites for the development of a
complex culinary culture. The strength of this cuisine is to a great
extent due to the attention paid to the senses—to the aroma and
texture of food.

Muslims were also fond of coloring dishes yellow with saffron,
red with sandalwood, or green with mint, for example. In addition,
food was made creamy with nuts but was garnished with raisins
or pistachios, so the consistency was a combination of smooth
punctuated by crunchy bits.

This is foremost the cooking of the elite. Among poor people, there
is a great deal of diversity from place to place in terms of what is
cooked and consumed.
Suggested Reading
Zouali, Medieval Cuisine of the Islamic World.
Zubaida, Taste of Thyme.
90
Culinary Activity
Baghdadi Recipe
This recipe is an adaptation of one appearing in the Kitab al-Tabikh (“Book
of Dishes”) by Muhammad b. al-Hasan b. Muhammad b. al-Karim, translated
by Charles Perry as A Baghdad Cookery Book (p. 98). It dates to the 13th
century. It is what we would today call taffy. Keep in mind when making this
that we inherited our sweet tooth directly from medieval Islam.
Halwa Yabisa
Start with sugar dissolved in water and boiled until it thickens. This should be
at what is called the “hard ball” stage, which you can determine by dropping
a little bit of the dissolved sugar from a spoon into ice water. (Don’t touch
it with your fingers until after it’s in the water.) A firm but still malleable
ball should form. If you have a candy thermometer, it should be about 260
degrees Fahrenheit. Pour the thick syrup onto a marble counter or a smooth
platter. Drive a large nail into the wall, and when cool enough to touch, fold
the taffy over the nail and pull. Repeat until it is shiny, white, and opaque.
Knead into it pistachios (or crushed almonds or sesame seeds). Cut it up into
strips or triangles. It can also be colored with saffron or cinnabar, though the
latter is toxic because it contains mercury. Red food coloring would be better
than historic authenticity in this case.
91
Carnival in the High Middle Ages
Lecture 13
A
Lecture 13: Carnival in the High Middle Ages
fter the Dark Ages, Europe was pretty much in ruins, with the
sole exception of Spain under the rule of the Ummayad caliph of
Córdoba, which was a dazzling civilization with a sophisticated
Mediterranean cuisine linked firmly to the Middle East. The rest of Europe
was not only still suffering devastating famines, weak kings, and general
economic dislocation, but also a new wave of Germanic invasions in the 9th
and 10th centuries by a people from the north known as the Vikings. In this
lecture, you will learn how these invasions seriously disrupted Europe and
introduced a new foodway to the region.
Culinary Changes in Europe
 The Vikings invaded and conquered the British Isles and Normandy
in northern France, and the Normans in turn invaded England in
1066. Vikings also conquered Sicily, displacing the Arab rulers
there. Another group called the Rus settled in Russia and traded
as far as Constantinople and Baghdad. It is odd to think of Viking
and Persian cultures coming in contact, but even in the earliest
European cookbooks, there definitely was an influence.
92

Returning to the Middle Ages, in the year 1000, everything
changed. The Vikings settled down, regular trade began to pick
up and intensify, and the population began to rise dramatically.
Cities began to grow again, sometimes right over the rubble of
Roman cities.

One of the most compelling reasons for this dramatic change is a
serious shift in climate. Evidence proved that Europe was getting
significantly warmer. Sudden grain surpluses suggested a longer
growing season, which led to people cultivating more land,
reclaiming it from the wild, and moving up mountainsides. This
growth in resources naturally stimulated population growth.

In addition, there was a series of inventions that some historians like
to call the second agricultural revolution. The Mouldboard plow
gradually replaced the wheeled aratus used in southern Europe,
and because of the expense of owning and feeding a plow team,
usually a whole village will farm cooperatively—called open-field
farming. Another crucial invention is the horse collar, which rests
on the shoulder blades of the horse and allows it to be used as a
plow animal.

There were also all kinds of land reclamation projects, including
building dikes in the Netherlands and moving up mountainsides to
plant vineyards. The use of the waterwheel to grind grain allows
milling to become a very profitable business. Risen and baked
bread become far more widely used as opposed to gruel. The diet
once again becomes more sedentary and grain based.

Increasingly, wild animals are enclosed in parks and become the
private reserves of nobles and kings. Stealing wild animals, or
poaching, becomes a serious crime. As a result, game like venison,
wild boar, and even large ocean animals (such as dolphin, whale,
and sturgeon) become firmly associated with nobility.

Though not exactly the crude meat feasts of the early Middle Ages,
the noble banquet was still a visual expression of the inequality and
interdependency of the feudal nobility. For the most part, nobles
have lost their military function once relative peace has returned to
Europe. Hunting and hawking replicate warfare, and there are a few
nice wars to keep people busy.

Nobles have a lot of wealth, but there’s really not much to spend
it on. Europe does not manufacture luxury goods, but the Muslim
world and Asia do. It occurs to these nobles that all the raping
and pillaging they’re used to doing is impossible now that kings
are making laws against that sort of thing, so they extend their
energies outward.
93

During the Crusades, Europeans conquered Jerusalem and
neighboring principalities, built castles there, and stayed for about
a century. They even plundered Constantinople in one crusade (a
Christian empire). At the same time, the Spanish knights, from their
tiny kingdoms in the north of Spain had their own kind of crusade,
the Reconquista, in which they pushed the Moors out, a process
that took several centuries but was mostly complete by the 13th
century. Both of these events are crucial to the dramatic change in
European cuisine.
94

Europeans began to learn about
Greek science, medicine, and
mathematics indirectly through
Arabic translations made into
Latin. They learned agricultural
techniques, philosophy, and Muslim
cooking. Specifically, they learned
about spices, which hadn’t come
to Europe in about 500 years. The
trade routes open again, and now
there are many more spices than
even the ancients knew—including
not only pepper and cloves, but also
spikenard and galangal.

With spices come dried fruits and in medieval cooking.
nuts and sugar, which was almost
completely unknown in ancient times. Only the wealthy could
afford these things; they were exotic luxury items brought from
far away. Medieval cooking was much closer to Indian cuisine
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
Lecture 13: Carnival in the High Middle Ages
Medieval Cooking
 In the Holy Land, in Spain, and also in formerly Muslim-ruled
Sicily, Europeans came in contact with a civilization far more
sophisticated and wealthy than their own. For the first time, they
were in direct contact with Islamic civilization, the inheritors of
classical culture.
Spices were used abundantly
Chicken Pie
One should take a shell of dough and put into it a hen, cut into pieces;
and add bacon, diced the size of peas; pepper; cumin; and egg yolks
beaten with saffron. Then, take the shell and bake it in an oven.
than to what we eat today. This was a period of great ingenuity and
invention in European cuisine.

As for medieval cooking, they made much greater use of herbs than
we do today. Like spices, herbs were considered quasi-medicinal,
used to correct an individual’s humoral imbalance, but also to
correct certain dishes that were themselves humorally imbalanced.
Many of the culinary combinations have a kind of medicinal logic
to them.

There are dozens of sauces based on pounded herbs, bread crumbs,
and vinegar—sort of like a pesto or mint sauce. Many combined
herbs and spices or sweet and sour flavors. In terms of culinary
techniques, pounding, straining, and coloring foods were the rage.
There was also a penchant for disguised foods, or foods that were
presented so they look like something else.

The earliest medieval cookbook, called Libellus de Arte Coquinaria,
dates from about the 12th century and has Latin recipe titles. The
original has been lost, but it’s known through a handful of copies
made toward the end of the 13th century in odd languages.

This book tells us that cooking was mostly done over a charcoal
fire or on a grill. Food was often cooked in pots, cut up into smaller
bits, and pounded and sieved into a smooth puree. The recipes are
almost entirely for meat, chicken, and a few fish—but practically
none were for vegetables or fruit. However, most recipes do include
spices, which is pretty decent evidence that the trade networks have
opened up again and extend all the way to Scandinavia.
95
Lecture 13: Carnival in the High Middle Ages
Carnival and Lent
 Christianity in the early Middle Ages instituted a series of fasts
throughout the calendar during which time most people were not
allowed to eat meat or meat products. The most important of the
fasts was the 40-day period from Ash Wednesday to Easter, which
was meant to commemorate Jesus’s fast in the desert. Far more
interesting is the feast that preceded it, Carnival, whose name
is derived from carne, or meat, and was celebrated on Shrove
Tuesday, or Mardi Gras (Fat Tuesday).
96

Carnival was the celebration in which any remaining meat had to
be consumed prior to the 40-day fast of Lent. Typically, this was
the one time of the year when all the normal rules of order could be
subverted. In other words, the world turned upside down. This was
also a time to indulge in pleasures of the flesh.

Historians have explained Carnival as a ritual that served as a
safety valve for a community that normally holds in their pent-up
frustrations against those in power. During this one celebration,
they need not bow in deference to the lord of the manor or the
village priest.

Returning to the normal order of society the day after the
celebrations also reinforced the fact that this is an unusual and onetime occasion; during the rest of the year, everyone has to obey their
superiors and show due deference. In the end, Carnival actually
strengthens the social order and usual patterns of subordination.

There were also minor fasts and feasts scattered throughout the
Christian calendar as well as fasts every Saturday (beginning
Friday evening) and, in some places, on Wednesdays as well. In
total, about 150 days of the year were set aside as fasting days.
People were allowed to eat fish if they could afford it. Beans were
firmly associated with Lent and periods of fasting, but vegetables
and starchy staples really formed the bulk of the Lenten diet for
most people.

What began to rankle many people was the widespread sale of
dispensations, which could be bought from the church and allowed
an individual—or even a whole city—to ignore a particular detail
of the fast. Not everyone was happy with the Lenten restrictions,
and not many people could afford the dispensations, though often
priests could. It’s a course of contention through the Middle Ages.

Another interesting feature of medieval food culture is stories and
folktales, which circulated orally and were increasingly written
down. The most interesting story is one that is set in the land of
Cockaigne, a magical place where no one has to work and food flies
into people’s mouths whenever they want it. The basic story line
serves as a moral warning against gluttons and people who think of
nothing but eating and drinking all day.
Suggested Reading
Bell, Holy Anorexia.
Burke, Popular Culture in Early Modern Europe.
Bynum, Holy Feast.
Camporesi, Bread of Dreams.
Flandrin, Arranging the Meal.
Grewe and Heiatt, eds., Libellus de Arte Coquinaria.
Henisch, Fast and Feast.
McAvoy, Consuming Narratives.
Pleij, Dreaming of Cockaigne.
Culinary Activity
Libellus de Arte Coquinaria: Making Walnut Oil
This is the very first recipe in the manuscript owned by the Royal Library
of Copenhagen. The language, if you look carefully, is very similar to Old
English, and if you read it aloud, it is almost intelligible. More interesting
97
is to make the oil. You’ll need fresh raw walnuts for this. It is easiest to
heat the mixture first, and then pound or process, and then wring them out
in a good, sturdy dish towel. This oil is fabulous on a salad or drizzled onto
bread. This is the original and a very literal translation, so you can see the
cognate words.
Man skal takae en dysk maeth nutae kyaernae, oc en aeggy skalae full maeth
salt, oc latae them samaen i en heet mortel oc stampae thaet wael, oc writhae
gomaen et klaethae, that warthaer thaet oly.
Lecture 13: Carnival in the High Middle Ages
“Man shall take a dish with nut kernels, and an egg shell full with salt, and
let them together in a hot mortar and stamp that well, and wring through a
cloth, that will be oil.”
Anthropological Exercise: Participant Observation
Attend a festival such as carnival in New Orleans or a local food festival,
state fair, or similar event. Ideally, this should be one where people can drink,
get a little rowdy, and perhaps listen to loud music. Join in, but take note
of how people behave differently than on other occasions. Have strangers
approached you or talked to you without prompting? Are people closer than
they would be normally? Are they speaking more loudly or wearing clothes
they wouldn’t ordinarily? Note any unusual behavior. After the event,
consider what function the festival served. Did it bring people together
in ways beyond physical proximity? Was there a communal bond created
and, if so, on what basis? Did anyone “perform” his or her identity through
food—perhaps a particular dish or ethnic cuisine? Now consider ways these
insights might heighten your interpretation of festivals in the past.
98
International Gothic Cuisine
Lecture 14
I
n general, late medieval or Gothic cuisine was international and appealed
to a wide variety of social classes, all of whom tried to get spices when
they could as both a flavoring and a mark of status. Above all, this
cuisine involved a very artificial style of cooking that loved colors, disguised
food, and sharp contrasts of flavor. In this lecture, you will see how the
efflorescence of the medieval economy, the reconnection of Eastern trade
routes, and the increasing stratification of society all led to a resplendent
cuisine that not only dominated the courts of kings and barons, but also was
increasingly imitated by those below them.
The Plague in Europe
 Around the year 1300, Europe was once again bursting at the
seams. It had reached the critical threshold of population density
and, given the technology available to provide food, was bound—
according to Malthus—to suffer some kind of major catastrophe to
rebalance people and resources.

The first major catastrophe came in the early 14th century, around
1315 to 1317, in the form of successive years of crop failure. This
meant that any reserves were eaten up. One year’s failure is not so
devastating, and happens naturally every 10 or 12 years, but if this
happens several years in a row, chronic malnutrition causes a sharp
and immediate population drop.

The famines of the early 14th century are absolutely nothing
compared with a contagious disease that makes its appearance in
southern Europe in 1348. How it gets there is the most fascinating
part of the story. In the preceding century, Genghis Khan and
his Mongol hordes had conquered China, all of central Asia, and
most importantly Persia—bringing the Abbasid dynasty to an end.
However, it also, by coincidence, was the same time that Europe
99
Lecture 14: International Gothic Cuisine
had become once again hooked up to the trade routes extending to
the Middle East to get spices and luxury items.
100

The Mongols traversed part of central Asia, where this virus was
endemic among a population of black rats. The pathogen is Yersinia
pestis, a bacillus (rod-shaped) bacterium that had thrived among
these rats for many generations and had learned to live with their
rat hosts rather than killing them off. However, the bacteria had not
yet learned to live with humans. Instead, if an infected flea (that had
bitten an infected rat) bit a human, the human would be killed off
very quickly.

When the plague first hits Europe in 1348, it is absolutely
devastating. There were probably several varieties of the plague at
work, but the most important one was the bubonic plague, named
for the buboes, or large black swellings that occur in the armpits,
groin, and lymph nodes. The bubonic plague usually kills a human
within a few days.

In the course of the Reconquista, Spain and Portugal were gradually
pushing out the Moors. By 1291, that process was largely complete,
with the exception of Granada. The straits of Gibraltar were now
controlled by Christians, which meant that ships could get from the
Mediterranean out into the Atlantic and up to northern Europe. It
was trade that facilitated the rapid spread of the plague; infected
rats stowed away on ships with their fleas. There is always a price
to be paid for progress, civilization, and luxury items.

About a third of all Europeans perished in this first outbreak of
the plague. Some towns were completely depopulated. About 35
million people died, which completely dislocated the economy at
first, but in the long run, the survivors inherited the spoils. The price
of labor and wages rise while the price of land plummets because
landlords are desperate to get tenants. In other words, serfdom falls
apart, and peasants are in a position to dictate terms.
Seymé of Chicken or Veal
from Le Ménagier de Paris
(barbecued chicken put in a stew
with onions, spices, wine, and bread crumbs)
Gravé or seymé is a winter pottage. Peel onions and cook them all
cut up; then, fry them in a pot. Now you should have your chicken
split down the back and browned on the grill over a charcoal fire,
and the same if it is veal. Then, you must cut the meat into pieces
if it is veal, or in quarters if it is chicken, and put it into the pot
with the onions. Then, take white bread browned on the grill and
soaked in broth made from other meat. Then, crush ginger, cloves,
grains of paradise, and long pepper; moisten them through with
verjuice and wine without straining this; and set aside. Then, crush
the bread and put it through a sieve and add it to the brouet, strain
everything, and boil, then serve.

The lot of the average peasant, ironically, improves dramatically.
Most food historians are in agreement that the average peasant
ate more meat, consumed more alcohol, and were generally much
better fed after 1350 than before. Their diet was more varied and
included more calories. Most importantly, they could often begin
to afford more luxury items. In other words, the wealth was now
spread about more evenly among all classes of society, and because
there were fewer people around, everyone got a bigger slice
of the pie.

As a result of the plague, more people had increased buying power,
and despite the overall shrinking of the economy, there were
more people able to imitate their superiors. There was developing
a so-called middle class of urban professionals and wealthy
rural peasants, who could afford luxuries, prepare elaborate and
fashionable dishes, and buy cookbooks.
101

Having a thriving court culture and people able to imitate it is one
reason culinary arts thrive. Before, we certainly had a court culture
and a handful of nobles who could imitate it or were invited to
noble banquets themselves, but that was such a small percentage of
the society. Now, many more people can afford a roast on Sunday, a
few spices to liven up their food, and some decent wine.

Ironically, the people providing these luxuries grow fabulously
wealthy. It’s a few regions that flourish, but they become obscenely
wealthy in the late Middle Ages because of a brisk trade in both
basic foods and luxury items. In these regions, late medieval cuisine
flourishes—as it also does in the wealthy capitals of emerging
nation-states like London and Paris.
Lecture 14: International Gothic Cuisine
Medieval Cookbooks
 The medieval cookbooks that have survived were prepared usually
for noble or royal households. Only a few were designed for
bourgeois families. Medieval elite cuisine is very international.
Rulers wanted to eat like their fellow rulers in other countries, so
we see the same kinds of recipes all across Europe.
102

The most important medieval cookbook was The Viandier of
Taillevent, which is actually a collection of recipes probably
from as early as the 13th century that were gathered and adapted
by Guillaume Tirel, nicknamed Taillevent, who was chef to King
Charles V of France. This cookbook influenced several generations
of chefs who wanted to imitate the renowned culinary exploits
of the chef, who was reputed to be the most refined gourmand
in Europe.

The second great cookbook of this period is called Le Ménagier de
Paris, which was written in the late 1300s for a wealthy bourgeois
household. It takes the form of a book of advice written by a mature
if not elderly man for his new young bride. The book is pretty
concrete proof that culinary techniques are trickling down the social
ladder—he borrows and adapts many recipes from Taillevent—and
are also being passed from generation to generation.
Vegetable-Cheese Tart
from Le Ménagier de Paris
(a kind of quiche)
To make a tart, take four handfuls of chard, two handfuls of parsley,
a handful of chervil, a sprig of fennel, and two handfuls of spinach;
trim them and wash in cold water; then chop very fine. Then, crush
two kinds of cheese, soft and medium, and mix in eggs, yolks and
whites, and beat into the cheese. Then, put the herbs in a mortar and
pound everything together, and put in some fine powder (spices) …
Take it to the oven, have a tart made, and eat it hot.

The third great French cookbook dates from 1420 and actually
comes from a region that is now part of Italy, the dukedom of
Savoy. Duke Amadeus VIII got his personal chef, Master Chiquart
Amiczo, to write down all of his best recipes and how to throw a
banquet, obviously to make the chef and his patron famous. It is
actually written in French and is titled Du Fait de Cuisine (“On
Doing Cookery”). It is also written for professionals and has been
called the first true cookbook of the Middles Ages.

Interestingly, the most common thickening agent was bread—finely
pounded or grated stale bread. This is a very good idea because you
don’t waste anything, and it does break down and become thick.
In medieval times, sauces almost always contrast with the main
dish. They are sour or sweet (or both) and spicy. Most of the time,
they are used as dipping sauces, or they are ground up and baked
within a pie.

In terms of cooking procedures, they still did a good deal of
roasting and still enjoyed game, but there is also heavy emphasis on
domestic meats. They usually roasted meats that were considered
humorally moist, such as pork or lamb, and that would dry the meat
out and make it more balanced and healthy. They boiled meats
103
that were considered humorally dry. There’s also a good deal of
emphasis on frying, specifically in lard. The technique is picked up
from Muslim world, though not the cooking medium.

People in the late Middle Ages were particularly fond of
“subtleties,” which were sometimes edible little vignettes—
such as castles or coats of arms—made out of sugar or fanciful
monstrosities to dazzle and titillate guests. They also made these
bizarre multicolored gelatin dishes.
Suggested Reading
Adamson, Food in Medieval Times.
Adamson, Regional Cuisines of Medieval Europe.
Albala, Cooking in Europe.
Austin, Two Fifteenth Century Cookery-Books.
Brears, Cooking and Dining.
Forster, Food and Drink.
Lecture 14: International Gothic Cuisine
Freedman, Out of the East.
Greco, ed., The Good Wife’s Guide.
Heiatt and Butler, eds., Curye on Inglysch.
Heiatt, Pleyn Delit.
Henisch, The Medieval Cook.
Keay, Spice Route.
Pouncy, tr., The Domostroy.
Redon, The Medieval Kitchen.
Santanach, ed., The Book of Sent Soví.
Santich, The Original Mediterranean Cuisine.
Scully, Art of Cooking.
104
Scully, Early French Cookery.
Scully, ed., The Viandier of Taillevent.
Turner, Spice.
Van Winter, Spices and Comfits.
Woolgar, The Great Household.
Culinary Activity
Taillevent—Cinnamon Brouet
Although the name brouet in this dish is cognate with broth, this is more
of a thick stew. The flavors are absolutely typical of the Middle Ages, as
is the technique of cooking twice. For a comparison of the four surviving
manuscripts of this cookbook, see Terence Scully, ed., The Viandier
of Taillevent, p. 55–56. The following translation combines the four
manuscripts for the greatest sense and ease of cooking. Grains of paradise, or
melegueta pepper, can be found online or in some specialty shops. It comes
from the west coast of Africa and is similar to pepper, though much fruitier
and more closely related to cardamom. Do not substitute what is referred to
as malaguetta in South America, which is a chili pepper. Also, verjus is the
juice of unripe grapes; any tart grape juice will work fine.
Cook your chicken in wine or in water. Or use whatever meat you like. Cut
it into quarters and fry in lard. Then take dry unskinned almonds and toast
them and mix with a great deal of cinnamon, pound them and mix with hot
beef broth and strain. Let this boil with the meat, with a little verjus, and add
ginger, cloves, grains of paradise. It will be nice and thick.
105
A Renaissance in the Kitchen
Lecture 15
T
he dominant style of early 16th-century Italy, both in the arts and
cuisine, favored elaborate, sophisticated presentations offering as
many different ingredients as possible and cooked in as many ways
as possible. In cookbooks, many foods received increased emphasis than in
any medieval cookbook. Dairy products and cheeses received much greater
coverage as did organ meats and fish prepared dozens of different ways with
countless sauces. In this lecture, you will learn that although 16th-century
Italian cooking inherited many features from the Middle Ages, the wealth,
variety, and copiousness of presentation made it something quite new.
Lecture 15: A Renaissance in the Kitchen
The Renaissance
 The setting for the Renaissance is the wealthy cities of late
medieval Italy that were actually city-states because they governed
the surrounding contado, or countryside, running their own affairs
and getting extraordinarily rich by supplying the rest of Europe
with luxury items and spices.
106

Renaissance means “rebirth.” First and foremost, this is an
intellectual movement that sought to revive the culture of classical
antiquity by imitating its arts and literature, by building structures
that looked like ancient Greek and Roman buildings, and by
depicting naked bodies in marble—like the ancients.

It even extends into government. Politicians read ancient histories
and political tracts and used them didactically to govern their own
states. What they sought was to equal, if not surpass, the greatness of
ancient Greece and Rome. This imitation was made possible partly
through archaeology—digging up old statues and restoring ruined
buildings—but more importantly, by recovering ancient texts.

Europe received Greek and Roman works on science and
agriculture, for example, via translations from Arabic into Latin,
but they tended to be corrupt, garbled, or usually incomplete.
Now, scholars hunted down good copies in the original languages,
and most importantly, they learned to read Greek, especially after
Constantinople fell to the Turks in 1453 and Greek scholars escaped
to the West with books.

They also went into old monasteries and long-discarded libraries
and began to find and read classical texts copied hundreds of years
before. A perfect example of this is the text of the Roman cookbook
attributed to Apicius, which was first written in about 400 in ancient
Rome and was eventually published in the 1400s.

This brings us to what is probably the single most important
invention in this story: the printing press. No longer does a text have
to be copied by hand—something only the wealthiest of people
could afford to have done. It can now be printed by the hundreds,
and even in a cheap format. This almost immediately stimulates a
rise in literacy as well as a vast literature of how-to books.

The overall effect of the printing press is that it speeds up the
pace of change. Information can reach more people faster, and
knowledge can be standardized and codified. Not only was classical
literature printed, but also new books on every imaginable topic,
including such food-related topics as cooking, diet, agriculture,
herbs, and manners.

Another term will explain why writers shifted their attention from
topics that preoccupied medieval writers to more practical concerns
like cooking and diet. This classical revival movement is often
called humanism, which in this context means a focus on practical
human affairs. It involved topics that they believed would improve
the human condition: ethics rather than abstract theology, rhetoric
rather than logic, and poetry and art rather than canon law.

In other words, this was a major shift in the curriculum that sought
to make people well-rounded citizens rather than just professionals
trained as theologians or lawyers. This focus on humans (rather than
107
on the heavens and the afterlife) meant that everyday topics such as
maintaining a household, cooking a healthy meal, and throwing a
banquet became serious topics worthy of study.
Lecture 15: A Renaissance in the Kitchen
Platina’s Cookbook
 The first printed cookbook, De Honesta Voluptate by Bartolomeo
Platina (originally Bartolomeo Sacchi), first appeared around 1470
in Rome. It is actually two books uncomfortably stuffed together.
The recipes are borrowed from Martino of Como, who was a
professional chef for Cardinal Trevisan, who wrote a cookbook that
circulated in manuscript in the early 15th century.

The cookbook is about natural history (what we would now
consider biology) and dietary medicine. Platina offers a way for
readers to enjoy themselves at the table and observe some dietary
rules and stay healthy. Thus, he recommends the classical ideal of
moderation, or the balance of pleasure and health. He also offers
guidelines on how to strike the balance and maintain it year round.

Martino’s cookbook, which is really a late medieval cookbook,
features the use of sugar and spices and sweet-and-sour sauces, but
Martino was innovative in several ways. There is also the tendency
to present individual ingredients whole rather than pounded up and
disguised, as medieval cooks were so fond of doing. Probably most
important is the heavy emphasis on vegetables, which he treats as
dishes in their own right and offers all sorts of interesting recipes.

For Platina’s entries, he typically quotes Pliny or some Roman
agricultural writer and offers a bit on how they were valued in ancient
times. The cookbook is primarily a piece of humanist scholarship,
so Platina also tells you about each food’s medicinal properties, how
easily it’s digested, and what kinds of humors it may provoke.
Ficino’s Cookbook
 In Florence, the birthplace of humanism, there was a particular
thinker named Marsilio Ficino who represented a late phase of
Renaissance humanism. He was about the same age as Platina,
108
maybe a decade younger, but their two books could not possibly be
more different. Ficino was a scholar specializing in Plato.

Ficino wrote a book called De Vita (“On Life”), which is mostly
a diet book about things that scholars should eat to help them stay
healthy, have clear and rational thoughts, and live—as Ficino
says—in harmony with the stars.

De Vita is on the one hand based on standard Galenic principles—
hot and cold food and humoral balance—but it also has an
admixture of astrology and magic, including what foods you can eat
to harness the unseen forces of the universe and how to avoid what
he considered the most dangerous disease of scholars: melancholy.

An idea that underlies much of his thought is called the doctrine
of signatures, which basically means that the power of a given
substance will be revealed by its outward form—its shape or color.
It is for this reason that Ficino often recommends bright-colored
foods like saffron, golden-hued wines, or even gold. They have a
certain sympathetic affinity with the Sun, which has the power of
light, knowledge, clarity, and understanding.

Apart from many bizarre recipes, there is also a great deal of what
we would now call aromatherapy as well as all sorts of advice on
sleeping, sex, and when to work and rest. It is a very interesting
book, but it is not representative of mainstream dietary thought in
the least. Most Florentines, surprisingly, were still eating much the
same medieval diet.
Messisbugo’s Cookbook
 Banchetti by Cristoforo di Messisbugo was a cookbook that was
written to describe the banquets thrown in the court of Duke Ercole
d’Este in Ferrara. Messisbugo’s banquets are a perfect match for the
style of art flourishing at the time, called mannerism, which can be
described as a self-consciously elaborate and sophisticated style that
sought to venture beyond the balanced and rational compositions of
the Renaissance by depicting figures in twisted positions sometimes
109
T
Puff-Pastry Pizzas
he following recipe from Messisbugo’s cookbook is
particularly interesting not only because of the bizarre
method of making a puff pastry, but also because it is called
“pizza.” It bears practically no relation to what we now know by
that name. The puffs, incidentally, were one of the more common
tidbits placed on the credenza before guests arrived and were, thus,
eaten as a starter. Presumably, his audience knows exactly what
these were supposed to look like, because he merely instructs:
“make your puff pizzas.” This also where butter appears and plays a
major role in the cuisine.
To make 10 puff-pastry pizzas (notice there’s a total of six-and-ahalf pounds of butter):
Lecture 15: A Renaissance in the Kitchen
Pull the soft interior out of four white breads and soak it in tepid
water. Take three pounds of the finest wheat flour, ten egg yolks
and a pound of fresh butter, three ounces of rose water, and seven
ounces of sugar. Mix everything together with the bread, making a
dough. Roll it out into a sheet as you would a lasagna dough, and
make it as light as you can. Then, take a pound and a half of fresh
butter, heated, and pour it over the sheet. Let it cool. Then, roll a
spiral pastry cutter the length of the sheet and cut it into 10 pieces.
Next, make your puff pizzas. Have a pan ready with four pounds
of fresh butter, and fry your puff pizzas in it. When they are fried,
sprinkle a half pound of sugar over them.
placed into illogical settings. This style influenced the cutlery, table
settings, and presentation of food, and it affected how and what
foods were prepared.

110
Although the basic outlines of Italian cuisine at the start of the
16th century were inherited from the middles ages—there is still
the heavy use of spices, sugar, and sauces based on vinegar—
something began to change noticeably. Messisbugo’s description
of banquets reveals a diversity of dishes bordering on perversity,
spectacles and surprises, and ingenious novelties—all of which
show that mannerist esthetics were at play.

A typical banquet, some with as many as a dozen separate courses,
included salads, soups, vegetables, pastries and pies, sweets—
especially little allegorical scenes made of sugar called trionfi—as well
as fish and meats in nearly every single course. Rather than presenting
an orderly procession of dishes, the diner was meant to be overwhelmed
by the variety and elegance of each successive presentation.

Some of Messisbugo’s recipes contain crushed coral or pearls,
deemed to be restorative, but they would certainly have been
impressive for the cost alone. The sugar, spices, and rose water
that flavor so many of the dishes would have been considered just
as luxurious. There are also a lot of foreign dishes—including
German, Spanish, Turkish, French, and Hungarian—showing that
these were adventurous eaters eager to taste the new and exotic.
However, not all the recipes were so outlandish.
Suggested Reading
Bourdieu, Distinction.
Capatti, Italian Cuisine.
David, Harvest of the Cold Months.
Jeanneret, Feast of Words.
Martino of Como, The Art of Cooking.
Platina, On Right Pleasure and Health.
Riley, Italian Food.
Serventi, Pasta.
Unger, Beer in the Middle Ages and Renaissance.
111
Culinary Activity
Lecture 15: A Renaissance in the Kitchen
Christoforo di Messisbugo, Banchetti (1549): To Make Ten Plates of
Maccheroni p. 52
In the Renaissance, macaroni was a generic name for all kinds of pasta—
either what we would today call gnocchi, tubular pasta, or even noodles.
This version is more of a dumpling but was still labor intensive enough to
be considered elegant and worthy of noble tables. Of course, it does not yet
contain potato, though those were known to botanists in this century. Bread
crumbs serve the same purpose. Notice also the intriguing flavorings, which
are actually delicious. Feel free to cut down the recipe in any way you like.
Messisbugo gives us measurements, so that is possible, but do note that a
pound at this time was 12 ounces rather than 16.
Take five pounds of white flour and two of grated white bread, and mix well
with the flour, and then take boiling water and three eggs to make the dough,
which should be neither too tough nor too light. Let it cool a little. Then
cut into pieces about the size of a chestnut, and roll your macaroni across
the holes of a grater and put them into boiling water to cook. When they’re
cooked, add a little salt, then take two and a half pounds of grated hard
cheese with an ounce and a half of ground pepper mixed in, then toss so the
cheese is above and below, along with a pound and a half of butter on top,
then cover with another plate, placing it in a hot place until you’re ready to
bring it to the table, and sprinkle if you like with a little sugar and cinnamon
on top and it will be better.
112
Aztecs and the Roots of Mexican Cooking
Lecture 16
B
efore venturing into the modern era, you will learn about Mexico
at the time of the Aztecs, immediately before the encounter with
Europeans after 1492. The Aztecs were not, of course, the first great
New World civilization; there were many earlier peoples living in what is
today Mexico—including the Olmec, Toltec, Maya, and Teotihuacán—
before the Aztecs arrived. However, this lecture will focus on the Aztecs
because they absorbed and ruled over most of these peoples or their
descendants. As a result, they adopted many cultural and culinary traits from
these peoples.
Agriculture before the Aztecs
 Before the development of agriculture, the early peoples of Mexico
lived mostly by hunting, fishing, and gathering as elsewhere. In
contrast to the general pattern on the Eurasian continent, most of
the large animals were extinct before 7000 B.C. The native peoples
came to rely increasingly on plants like mesquite, nopal cactus,
maguey, and wild teosinte—the ancestor of corn—which first
began to be domesticated about 4000 B.C., though recent evidence
suggests it was long before this.

They supplemented this with hunting smaller animals and fishing,
but they didn’t have any large domesticated cattle. They ate mostly
small mammals, lizards, insects, and grubs. This seems to have
provided them with a decent diet, because there were several
regions of fairly dense population.

As these peoples became more sedentary and dependent
on agriculture, they came to depend more heavily on a few
domesticated species, including maize (which is a plant selectively
bred for large and numerous grains), squash, beans, tomatoes,
chilis, amaranth, cactus, and many fruits—especially the avocado
and guava. These are the staples of early Mexican diet, as they will
113
Lecture 16: Aztecs and the Roots of Mexican Cooking
be of the Aztec, and all of them still form a basic core of Mexican
cuisine. All were being cultivated before the Aztecs showed up.

When the Aztecs arrived in around 1325, they were a small tribe of
about 10,000 people that settled on the shores of Lake Texcoco in
central Mexico, already a fairly densely populated area—but one
that had no ruling, dominant power after the collapse of the Toltec
state (around 1150).

The area was much like medieval Europe in that there were many
small autonomous regions whose ruling elites married each other.
Sometimes, they fought wars, but there was no nation-state. Aztecs
just happened to be fiercer warriors than anyone else and were hired
as mercenaries. They even moved about a lot as their alliances with
various tribes shifted.

The Aztecs had a legend that when they saw an eagle perched on a
cactus with a snake in its mouth (the symbol on the Mexican flag),
that’s the place they should settle down. That’s where they founded
their city Tenochtitlán. From there, they started to conquer their
neighbors—a warrior elite of marauders, just like in Europe. By the
15th century, they dominated the whole region.
Ingredients of World Importance
 In early Mexican societies, maize was a staple that took on a
deeply religious significance. The Maya word for it is kana, which
means “our mother.” On its own, it is very nutritious, but it lacks
some essential amino acids like lysine, isoleucine, and tryptophan.
However, in combination with beans, it provides a more complete
protein package that you can live on.

114
Processed maize was typically ground on a saddle-shaped metate
and made into a dough now called a masa, flattened into disks, and
cooked on a comal (originally made of clay, but now a flat metal
cooking surface). Masa could also be popped, steamed in a corn
husk to make tamales, or made into a drink called atole.
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
Genetically modified corn is a form of corn that has been engineered to have
traits that are agronomically desirable.

There are also several important root vegetables, including jicama,
yuca, malanga, and—probably one of the most important foods
affecting world eating habits later—sweet potatoes (Ipomoea
batatas, which is where we get the name “potato,” but sweet
potatoes and potatoes are not related). Sweet potatoes also shouldn’t
be confused with true yams, which come from Africa.

There are two forms of manioc root: a sweet version and a more
prevalent bitter version that contains hydrocyanic acid and is
thoroughly poisonous. Somehow, people figured out how to
grate, soak, and strain it to remove the poison. It’s one of the most
important food crops in the world, at least in the humid tropics. In
the West, it’s only used as tapioca.

There’s a great deal of confusion over which beans came from the
Old World and which came from the New World. In any case, all
the beans you’re most familiar with—including navy beans, pinto
beans, red beans, and string beans—are all New World plants.
115
Lecture 16: Aztecs and the Roots of Mexican Cooking

One of the more interesting foods eaten in central Mexico is
spirulina, a kind of algae collected from lakes. It is high in protein
and minerals. Lakes were also very important to Aztec agriculture
because they actually farmed on them. They built floating islands
anchored to the lake bed and covered with dirt (called chinampas)
that were kept watered all year round and could produce four crops
of maize per year.

They had remarkably sophisticated systems of terracing and
irrigation. They also knew how to plant crops in complementary
combinations, called intercropping. They planted beans between the
rows of maize; one takes out nitrogen, and the other puts it back in.

Mexicans domesticated rabbits, dogs, and turkeys as well as a kind
of guinea pig, and they hunted all sorts of wild animals, including
ducks, capybara, coati, and armadillo.
Aztec Cuisine
 Aztec cuisine was quite complex, featuring all sorts of extremely
spicy stews. Chili peppers were a main ingredient in Aztec cuisine,
and they were also used to make smoke bombs. Chilies (Capsicum
annum) are native to Mexico, and the Aztecs apparently ate nothing
without them. Chilies would be soaked, ground up, and used as the
base of sauces—exactly as they are today.
116

Just as in Europe, there is evidence that the Aztecs had a kind of
middle class that was trying to imitate the customs of the nobles
and emperor. What is striking, though, is that in accounts of Aztec
meals, the observers noted that the participants ate moderately.
They didn’t indulge themselves, and balance and moderation are
apparently running themes through all Aztec thought.

When the Aztecs were introduced pork, beef, and other forms of
alcohol, they attributed the rapid population decline to indulgence in
these. In fact, however, it was smallpox and measles. The Christian
traditions of fast and feast, asceticism and indulgence, were very
foreign to Aztec attitudes toward food and did not blend very easily.

What else we know about Aztec cuisine is from inference from
colonial cooking after. The foods that seem to be almost completely
native rather than imported are the sauces: pounded sauces like
ahuaca-mulli, the ancestor of guacamole, made with avocados, new
world onions, and tomatoes—it’s probably the food we recognize
that has changed the least since Aztec times.

Tomatoes are actually native to South America and were brought
north. They were mashed with chilies (and epazote, not oregano
or cilantro) into the ancestors of what we now know as salsa, a
chunky sauce that is very foreign to European cooking and actually
isn’t adopted there for several centuries. What is similar, just by
coincidence, is the way sauces are used; they are presented in a
little bowl, and food is dipped into them with the fingers.

Aztecs also had fermented drinks, the most important of which,
pulque, was fermented from the maguey or agave plant—kind of
like an undistilled tequila. Apparently, the Aztecs were very strict
about not allowing public drunkenness, and pulque was supposed
to be drunk only by the upper classes and priests, but it was not a
strictly enforced rule. Pozol was also a kind of fermented maize
drink that was probably similar to undistilled bourbon, which is
made from sour mash corn.

Aztecs also drank chocolatl, another drink especially reserved for
nobles and priests. It came as a tribute from the South and was even
apparently used as money. They had no sugar, so typically it was
flavored with chili peppers and an orchid species: vanilla.

Cacao was used earlier by the Maya, who buried their dead with
chocolate in pots. They probably got it from the Olmec, and the
Aztecs got it from the Maya. They typically drank it hot and frothed
up with a device that is a stick with wooden rings around it—a
molinillo. Unlike the Maya, they added honey to sweeten it and
typically drank it after a meal.
117

Cochineal was a very important food-coloring and dye plant. It
came from a parasitic bug that lived on cacti and produced a bright
red (edible) dye when crushed. It replaced alkermes and became a
major world export item. Another food coloring is achiote, a redyellow seed that is used to color food like saffron does.

Tobacco was known throughout Mexico and certainly was not an
innovation of the Aztecs, but the Aztecs smoked it out of tubes.
At religious festivities, men ate small black mushrooms that made
some people sing and others laugh—and eventually would cause
hallucinations, which they believed foretold the future. Then, they
made an offering to the gods, and a banquet followed with flowers
and smoking. What they were describing was probably a type of
psilocybin, and it is interesting to note how many different religions
make use of the ecstatic drug-induced state.
Lecture 16: Aztecs and the Roots of Mexican Cooking
Suggested Reading
Coe, America’s First Cuisines.
Coe, True History of Chocolate.
McNeil, Chocolate in Mesoamerica.
Norton, Sacred Gifts, Profane Pleasures.
Ortiz de Montellano, Aztec Medicine, Health, and Nutrition.
Culinary Activity
Cooking a Pre-Columbian Recipe
Just as it is fun to imagine what Italian food, for example, would have been
like before the introduction of tomatoes, peppers, or corn, imagining preColumbian cooking is equally instructive for food history. There could be no
wheat, beef, pork, or even chicken. Herbs and seasonings would be restricted
to native plants—so no oregano or cumin—and a whole range of vegetables
would be missing. On the other hand, there are so many ingredients you can
use. This is a simple corn-and-bean dish, and of course, versions are still
made today, but it captures the spirit of Aztec cooking rather nicely.
118
Start by soaking a pot of beans overnight. Use any Phaseolus species, such
as pinto, navy, kidney, or even black beans; these are all from the New
World. The next day, pour off the water and add fresh water just to cover by
an inch or two. Use a clay pot if you can; it does improve the flavor. Add a
pinch of epazote, which is said to reduce flatulence. It tastes good, too. Add
to the pot a good handful of pozole, which consists of corn kernels soaked in
lime and swollen. You can use dried or canned hominy. Keep on a very low
simmer without boiling vigorously. Once the beans are nearly tender, add
salt. Continue cooking until the beans are soft. Then, add chopped nopalitos,
or cactus paddles. They are best fresh. Cut off the spines along the edge, and
then cut off the other spines along the flat sides of the paddle, being careful
not to get pricked. Then, slice them into long, thin strips; rinse well; and put
into the pot with the beans and corn. It will thicken it up and create a slightly
mucilaginous texture, which is delightful. You can also use jarred nopalitos
if you like. This is a complete vegetarian meal, offering a balanced package
of proteins.
119
1492—Globalization and Fusion Cuisines
Lecture 17
T
Lecture 17: 1492—Globalization and Fusion Cuisines
his lecture is partly about exploration and the expansion of the
economy, but it is mostly about how the desire for spices and other
luxury items connects the entire globe. This lecture is also about
how plants, animals, and diseases were, for the first time in human history,
transported across continents—not just from the Americas to Europe,
but also from Asia, Africa, and Europe to everywhere. In this lecture, you
will learn that the globalization of the food supply was probably the most
important event in human history since the discovery of agriculture.
The Venetian Spice Trade Monopoly
 In the mid-15th century, the Venetians had pretty much monopolized
the spice trade. They picked up spices and luxury goods like silks,
gold, drugs, and dyestuff in the eastern Mediterranean and brought
it to the rest of Europe. The Venetians used galleys—which are big,
rowed, flat-bottomed ships that can hold a lot of cargo—to hold
onto their monopoly. Spices and silks don’t take up much room, so
the Venetians armed these ships and filled them with guns to protect
their trade.
120

The Venetians captured a long stretch of land extending down the
Dalmatian coast all the way to Corfu in Greece, Crete, and Cyprus for
a while to serve as stopping off points and to provide friendly harbors
in case they’re chased by pirates or hostile Turks. The Venetian state
supported these enterprises. They built themselves a maritime empire
with colonies that were basically military garrisons.

The importance of this model is that it was imitated by the
Portuguese. Portugal faces the Atlantic, in which galleys are not of
much use, which meant that they were forced to develop a different
kind of sea-worthy vessel—and they did. They also had to develop
methods of navigation that were more sophisticated than those used
in the Mediterranean.

The Portuguese had a king in the early 15th century—King Henry
the Navigator—who founded a school for navigation and personally
sponsored voyages. The assumption was that any profit made by
merchants is wealth coming into the country, and if you resell what
you bring in to other countries, that brings money in. The whole
idea is to reexport, but not buy from other nations, which causes
money to flow out.

The Portuguese were going down the west coast of Africa, where
they found gold, ivory, rare woods, melegueta pepper, and slaves.
The slaves were mostly used as household servants by nobles, but
they were just beginning to be used on sugar plantations on islands
like Madeira, Cape Verde, and the Azores.

The Portuguese kept heading south down the coast of Africa.
Bartholomew Dias rounded the Cape of Good Hope in 1488, so
they then knew where Africa ended. It then began to occur to them
that if they could go up the other side of Africa and across the Indian
Ocean, they could completely cut out the Venetian middlemen and
even the Arab tradesmen in the Middle East. In other words, they
could go directly to the source—to India and Indonesia—for spices.

It takes them about 10 years to finally follow up on this idea. They
sent Vasco da Gama with a flotilla of four ships to try it, and he
succeeded, making it all the way to Calicut on the west coast, where
he came in contact with Asian ships from Malacca.

Europe is also now connected with Asia directly. Within a decade,
the Portuguese had conquered Calicut, destroyed rival Muslim
fleets under Alfonso de Albuquerque, and set up a military post in
India. They would soon thereafter take Goa, too, which remained a
port colony until this century.

The Portuguese took over Malacca on the Malay Peninsula and
Macao in China, and they had a foothold in Japan for a while. Most
importantly, they set up posts in Java, Sumatra, and throughout
Indonesia—which is where the spices come from.
121
Lecture 17: 1492—Globalization and Fusion Cuisines

On one of these voyages in 1500 under Cabral, heading out into
the Atlantic to reach South Africa, they actually bumped into South
America, which is basically why Brazil becomes a Portuguese
possession, too.

The result is that Lisbon became the largest and wealthiest port
in Europe, and the Portuguese successfully cut out the Venetians,
bringing not only more spices to Europe, but also in such great
quantities that eventually the price will go down. In the long run, by
the 17th century, spices are no longer such a prestigious item. They
go out of fashion in elite cooking because everyone could afford
them.

Throughout the 15th century, the Portuguese were getting going, and
their neighbors, the Spanish, were casting a jealous eye over the
border. In fact, they were pretty preoccupied themselves. The ruling
couple, Ferdinand and Isabella, decided that they wanted their new
joint kingdom (Castile and Aragon) to be completely Catholic. To
that end, they sought to complete the Reconquista by conquering
the very last Muslim province on the Iberian Peninsula (Granada)
and to expel all Jews from the kingdom.

While they’re busy with these plans, a Genoese merchant shows
up with a great idea: to sail westward around the globe to reach
Asia and pick up the same spices that the Portuguese were about to
get. Columbus’s plan didn’t appeal to the Portuguese, to the English
King Henry VII, or to the French. Finally, he went to Spain and
presented his ideas to Queen Isabella, who felt threatened by the
news of Diaz rounding the Cape of Good Hope.
The Discovery of the New World
 In 1492, Columbus he set off with three dinky ships and landed on
a small island in the Caribbean—either San Salvador or Watlings
Island. Columbus was convinced, until his dying day, that he had
discovered islands immediately adjacent to Japan and China. It is
clear from Columbus’s logbook that he was desperate to find spices,
122
but he was nonetheless the first European to taste corn, tomatoes,
chilies and sweet potatoes and to smoke tobacco.

In 1494, Spain and Portugal decide that rather than squabble over
who would take what, they get the Spanish Pope Alex VI to preside
over a treaty at Tordesillas, which essentially divides the entire
globe between the two powers. Within a few years, the Spanish start
settling in the New World—a pattern of colonization quite different
from the Portuguese outposts.

In the Caribbean (where Columbus first landed) and Brazil, without
native populations to support the economy—eventually, there were
laws passed prohibiting enslaving Native Americans—the colonists
got the idea of importing African slaves to work the plantations in
the New World. As a result, Africa and the Americas were linked,
and they were primarily growing sugar.

By the early 16th century, the Spanish had discovered the mainland.
Credit for this goes to Amerigo Vespucci of Florence basically
because he lied about an early voyage in 1504. Columbus was
actually the first to land on the mainland.

Under Hernán Cortés, the Spanish conquered the great Aztec empire
of Mexico, and by mid-century, Francisco Pizarro conquered the
Inca empire in Peru. The Spanish eventually went across the Pacific
and took the Philippines, which leads to the entire world being
linked economically. Only North America and Australia weren’t
firmly linked yet.
The Globalization of Food
 The Spanish introduced European plants and animals to the
Americas, including cattle, horses, pigs, chickens, wheat, and all of
the European fruits and vegetables—many of which went rampant
and completely displaced the native fauna. The people conquered,
and so did the germs, but the plants and animals also completely
upset the local ecosystems, making many species go extinct.
123
© Hemera/Thinkstock.
Lecture 17: 1492—Globalization and Fusion Cuisines
Native to tropical America, sweet potatoes are widely grown in warmer climates.
124

The Columbian exchange went both ways. For the first time in
human history, plants native to all five separate continents were
suddenly jumbled together, transplanted, and mixed up, and it
completely changed eating habits practically everywhere on Earth.

For example, the sweet potato was introduced to the Philippines
by the Spanish in the 16th century. There was a famine in China
in 1593, and commissioners were sent to Luzon in the Philippines
for help, and they came back with sweet potatoes, which were very
easy to plant and grew rapidly. According to some historians, the
rapid and economically disastrous population growth of China after
that date can be attributed to sweet potatoes. Resources cause the
population to rise too much.

What is ironic, though, is that Europeans were usually the slowest
to adopt new foods. For example, for poor people from the Middle
East to China (and Africa), chili peppers became a replacement
for expensive spices. They were adopted and became basics in
the cuisine in all of these places. However, the first printed recipe
involving chili peppers is from the late 17th century. They were
clearly food for the poor.

In addition, it was the combination of not knowing what to do with
it and being told not to eat it that caused the tomato not to be used
in Europe for a few hundred years after its discovery. In 1690, the
earliest recipes involving tomato salsa arose.

When they get to Europe, almost all New World foods are used in
completely different ways than among the Aztecs or Inca. Maize is
the perfect example of this. It was planted in Spain and Northern
Italy. Maize is easy to grow and filled a niche formerly taken by other
grains, like barley and millet. That is, it was ground up and made into
polenta and was adopted almost everywhere polenta was eaten.

However, Europeans never soaked the corn with lime and
never ground it and baked it into tortillas. As a rule, they never
combined it with beans. The result was serious vitamin B
deficiency and pellagra. The globalization of food has all sorts of
unexpected consequences.
Suggested Reading
Albala, Beans.
Crosby, Ecological Imperialism.
Crosby, The Columbian Exchange.
Diamond, Guns, Germs, and Steel.
Fussell, Corn.
Kiple, Moveable Feast.
Kurlansky, Cod.
Norton, Sacred Gifts.
Sokolov, Why We Eat What We Eat.
125
Culinary Activity
Lecture 17: 1492—Globalization and Fusion Cuisines
Chocolate Tasting Exercise
When Europeans first encountered chocolate among the Aztecs, it was drank
and remained a drink for several centuries—but the Aztec beverage was very
different. It could contain chili peppers and flavorings like güeynacaztle (flor
de oreja, or Cymbopetalum penduliflorum), mecasuchil (flor de cordel, or
Piper sanctum), tlixóchil (vanilla), and achiote (a yellow coloring agent,
Bixa orellana), which turned it deep red. Oddly, chefs are experimenting
with these flavors in chocolate bars today. When Europeans tasted it, they
wanted to sweeten it with sugar for both gastronomic and medicinal reasons.
They also added cinnamon, anise, and almonds or hazelnuts. One might
consider this the first fusion food, and the type of drinking chocolate still
used in Mexico is relatively unchanged. It is certainly nothing like what is
commonly drank as hot chocolate, made with milk.
As an experiment, buy a range of chocolate bars, running the gamut from
very sweet milk chocolate to dark bittersweet with a high percentage of
cacao. They are processed to be eaten directly at room temperature, but
they can all still be made into a drink. Simply dissolve each into a cup of
moderately hot water, stir vigorously, and arrange from lightest to darkest.
Starting with the lightest, notice how the water brings out the flavor
defects. Sweetness overwhelms everything else. Notice, too, how different
the high-cacao chocolate tastes when dissolved. The bitterness becomes
rounded, in ways not unlike coffee. If you like, experiment with flavorings,
especially cinnamon next to ground chili. Perhaps the original Spanish
settlers were onto something when they combined Eastern spices with
American chocolate.
126
16th-Century Manners and Reformation Diets
Lecture 18
I
n the 16th century, some major changes occurred in Europe that had very
interesting effects on food culture. The biggest and most important series
of events was the globalization of the economy and the exchange of
foods across continents, but in this lecture, you will learn about the other
important changes that occurred in the early modern period—starting with
the fact that favorable economic times in the wake of the plague triggered
Europe’s population to bounce back within a century and a half.
Changes in the Early Modern Period
 By 1500, there was once again a serious baby boom in Europe.
The effect this had on the economy was that lots of people were
scrambling for jobs, and the price of labor (wages) went down. A
scarcity of food meant that the cost of living went up because of
inflation—some of the most dramatic price surges in history—and,
once again, land was at a premium.

Feudalism had pretty much fallen apart, and serfs had become
peasants renting land (tenants). If they were lucky enough to
have good leases, or if they were freeholders and owned the land
themselves, they were in an excellent position because they could
supply the growing market with food and reap a good profit because
prices were so high. This led to an industrious class of farmers who
were middle-class yeomen and upper-middle gentry.

Because the demand and price of land was so high, the nobles—
large landholders and investors in trade, colonization projects, or
industries—also did very well. However, the nobles were no longer
allowed to run amok, raping and pillaging. In Europe, unless they
join a royal army, they have essentially lost their original military
function. The result is that they become domesticated; they go from
being warriors to being courtiers. Revealingly, there is a whole
literature devoted just to telling them how to behave.
127
Lecture 18: 16th-Century Manners and Reformation Diets

Another important factor in this increasingly court-dominated
society is that the general trend in most of the European powers is
for the monarchy to grow in power at the expense of the nobility.
In the 16th century, there is not only centralization, but also growth
of the physical territory of the crown; there is no longer a maze of
independent powers, but a true nation-state.

Anyone who wants power now has to go through the king. He
becomes the font of patronage, the person who appoints government
positions as well as church positions. Therefore, more than ever,
kings set fashions. The result is a dazzling court culture that trickles
down from nobles to gentry to wealthy bourgeois businessmen and
professionals—and even to wealthy yeoman farmers.

Almost immediately, we see the level of material culture take a
great leap forward. People with expendable income want to show
off their wealth—flaunt it a bit—and now there’s some great stuff
to buy.

One way to look at the plight of the poor, starving masses might
be to consider that for all the wealth that’s accumulating at the
upper end of the social scale, someone else is going hungry. Lots of
people, low wages, and high prices mean that the diet of the average
European becomes dramatically worse, and it becomes glaringly
obvious that eating customs come to be increasingly associated
with class.
The Reformations
 There’s another very important series of events that has a profound
effect on eating habits across Europe: the Protestant, Catholic,
and Radical Reformations. All of these were very important for
understanding attitudes toward food in the modern era.

128
At the start of the early modern period, there was mounting a
considerable reaction to what were considered abuses of the
medieval church. Most of all, it was wealth and profligacy, but it
was also the failure of priests to live up to their vows of chastity,
the sale of church offices, clerical ignorance, and a general failure
of the church to meet the spiritual needs of the people, who were
largely alienated by rituals in Latin.
It did not help that a number of questionable individuals occupied
the papal throne, including the fun-loving bon vivant Leo X and
the warrior pope Julius II. They may have been great patrons of the
arts, but as spiritual leaders, they were considered failures.

Humanist scholars were also concerned that the church had lost
sight of the original intentions of Jesus and his followers, which
was moral reform, and had instead begun to focus on the hollow
rituals and the letter of the law. This rift in the church is essential
for understanding the history of food because along with criticism
of the dogma and rituals of the church, its food strictures also came
under attack.

Starting with Martin Luther, the
Protestant Reformation was first and
foremost an attempt to return to the
original doctrines of Paul, which stated
that an individual can in no way earn his
own salvation. Justification is by “faith
alone,” and despite our own failings,
grace is given to the worst of sinners
if there is true faith. These ideas were
articulated by Martin Luther in his 95
theses, which were basically topics
posted on the door of the cathedral at
Wittenberg University for discussion
among theology students.

© Photos.com/Thinkstock.

Martin Luther (1483–
1546) was a German
theologian and
religious reformer.
Luther had taken holy orders and had found the ascetic rigors he
underwent extremely frustrating because he could never be sure
when God might be satisfied and when he had done enough to
merit salvation. Paul’s doctrines offered him comfort because they
assured him that without any merit on his part, he could be saved by
129
Lecture 18: 16th-Century Manners and Reformation Diets
faith alone. It was this single idea that hastened the permanent rift
in Western Christendom.
130

Ultimately, Luther came under the protection of German rulers,
which meant that the Reformation would be carried out by the
state. German Lutheran states broke away from the Roman Catholic
Church and abolished monasticism and clerical celibacy. The mass
was also held in German, and the congregation was encouraged
to participate directly by singing hymns, many of which Luther
composed. However, the church government and its rituals
remained relatively unchanged.

In the wake of Luther’s first decisive break with Rome, a number of
other Reformation movements sprang up. One of the most important
of these occurred in Zurich, Switzerland. The Swiss Reformation,
which provides a model for many other reform movements, resulted
in the idea that if people decide to fast as individuals, then it should
be complete abstinence from all food, or if people decide to fast
collectively to appease God’s wrath, then it should be a real fast
with no food and serious penitence.

In the Reformed traditions—which include the Dutch, the Scots,
French Huguenots, the English, and New England Puritans—
fasting doesn’t disappear, but it changes entirely into a communal
event for emergent occasions. Equally important is that no food is
ever forbidden. This has culinary consequences as well: Whereas
before there was a separation of milk, butter, and dairy products
(and of course meat) from fish and vegetables seasonally, they can
now be combined at any time of year.

The most influential thinker in the Reformed tradition was
John Calvin, who practically governed the town of Geneva. His
importance is primarily the formulation of a system of church
government known as Presbyterianism, in which the hierarchical
structure of Rome is replaced with a more democratic system
of elders who decide on doctrine at synods, or councils of
church elders.

Calvin’s attitude toward food is equally interesting and quite similar
to Stoicism. The Calvinists favored austerity and a rigorously guiltridden attitude toward pleasures of the flesh. It is also significant
that while asceticism of the sort practiced by medieval monastics
disappeared in countries that espoused Calvin’s ideas, a new kind
of personal simplicity and basic distrust of elegant food flourished
among the populace at large.

Arguably, puritanical thought more than any other factor quelled
the spread of culinary refinement in Calvinist countries. It has also
been argued that the doctrine of predestination, the idea that only
some people are destined to be saved, goaded people into looking
for signs of their election, which meant material prosperity—
hence, the Protestant work ethic and investing money rather than
squandering it.

Calvinist countries reinstated public fasting as a way to atone for
sins. Despite the return of the fast, the Carnival celebrations that
preceded it were definitively banned in the course of the 16th and
17th centuries. The cycle of feast and fast was definitively broken as
ordinary people were expected to maintain simple habits throughout
the year and austere ones on certain occasions.

Beneath these official or “magisterial” reform movements
implemented by temporal rulers, there were also a broad variety of
popular movements, most of whom are called Anabaptists—a term
of abuse meaning “rebaptizer” because they only baptized adults.

It was not until the mid-16th century that the Catholic Church
mounted and concerted their own major reform movement,
primarily through the Council of Trent, which decided that instead
of abandoning the ritual aspects of Christianity, they would
strengthen them.

Among Catholic Reformation thinkers, there is also a new attitude
toward food, one that can be gleaned indirectly through the
writings of Saint Francis of Sales. In his Introduction to a Devout
131
Life, although actually discussing sex, Saint Francis tell us how
we should approach food. First, he acknowledges that eating is
necessary to maintain life and, therefore, is a duty. It also serves
a social function and, thus, like reproduction, is a virtuous act.
Eating only to satisfy our appetite is tolerated, but is not in itself
praiseworthy, and eating to excess is dangerous.

The greatest effect of the Catholic Reformation on the eating habits
of ordinary people was that the periods of fasting were rigorously
maintained. Monastic orders flourished in southern Europe, and
a slew of new miracle-working saints, some still performing
incredible feats of self-denial, suddenly appeared. On the other
hand, the church retained its fabulous wealth and high-ranking
churchmen, and wealthy monasteries remained significant patrons
of the arts and refined cuisine.
Lecture 18: 16th-Century Manners and Reformation Diets
Suggested Reading
Albala, Eating Right in the Renaissance.
Elias, The Civilizing Process.
Holt, Alcohol.
Martin, Alcohol, Violence, and Disorder.
Mintz, Sweetness and Power.
Paston-Williams, Art of Dining.
Visser, Much Depends on Dinner.
Culinary Activity
Food in Art Exercise
Begin by focusing on 16th- and 17th-century still-life paintings, which are
extremely rich on the topic of food. Campi, Aertsen, Claesz van Heda,
Beuckelaer, and Cotan are all excellent. Look for markets; kitchen scenes;
and composite food heads, like those of Archimboldo. You’ll be able to find
these easily online, especially on the Web Gallery of Art. What do these
132
paintings reveal about the ingredients available? When and why are New
World foods depicted? Are these foods always symbolic—reminders of
the passing of time or death, or harbingers of rebirth as are often found in
depictions of Mary and the baby Jesus? Or are some artists simply interested
in the beauty of fruits, vegetables, and dead animals?
Who purchased these paintings, and why? Why are there lumpy peasants
in village scenes in paintings by Breughel? Are they satirical or gently
condescending? What is the intention of raucous Twelfth Night scenes
with people clearly drinking to excess and cavorting with each other, while
animals run around and children are unattended? When opulent ingredients
are shown, we might assume that this is to flaunt wealth and sophistication,
with beautiful vessels and exotic foods, then why do many Dutch still lifes
depict simple cheese, herring, and beer?
Finally, what do the kitchen scenes tell us about the experience of cooks in
the past? Who is doing which tasks? Why are some done by women and
others by men? What kinds of vessels are being used, and how do you think
the cooking technology influenced both the time spent in the kitchen and the
flavor of the food? Was it necessarily much more labor intensive than today?
Also notice what is not depicted. Obviously, there is no refrigeration; how
would this have influenced the way people shopped and cooked? Paintings
can be a great resource for food history, and you are encouraged to undertake
similar exercises for other periods throughout the course as well.
133
Papal Rome and the Spanish Golden Age
Lecture 19
E
Lecture 19: Papal Rome and the Spanish Golden Age
uropean cuisine blossomed in the 16th century and early 17th century.
Big changes in the 16th century—such as how the economy changed
with population growth and inflation—prompted culinary innovation.
In many cases, factors like a flourishing printing industry and increased
literacy rates merely meant the trickling down of practices that were once
exclusively noble, but now can be afforded by others. It also meant a great
deal of innovation and, most importantly, the development of regional
cuisines, which also come to be thought of as national cuisines. This lecture
focuses on 16th-century Italy and 17th-century Spain.
Scappi’s Cookbook
 The cooking of Renaissance Italy, in the great courts of Ferrara
and Florence, involved wild, lavish banquets. Italy did not become
a nation-state until 1860, and in fact, it became the primary
battleground for other nation-states (France and Spain) for the
entire first half of the 16th century. Italian fashions and cooking get
spread around the rest of Europe. It’s most noticeable in the arts.
134

Henry II of France marries Catherine de Medici, which was long
held to be the way Italian cooking got to France, including the
craze for things like artichokes and melons and drinking iced wine.
Italian cooking didn’t in fact influence the French that much. Apart
from some new vegetables, the French clung persistently to their
own habits.

Written at about the same time as the Council of Trent and first
published in 1570 is the major monument of Italian culinary art:
Bartolomeo Scappi’s Opera, which is arguably the grandest
achievement of Italian culinary literature, written by a man who
was chef to two popes and several cardinals.
Polpettoni
(Meat Rolls Roman Style)
T
he procedure for making Scappi’s polpettoni involves
pressing and marinating the meat and then making a gravy
based on the meat juices itself. Scappi’s common spice
mixture includes 4 ounces of cinnamon, 2 ounces of cloves, 1
ounce of ginger, 1 ounce of mace, 1/2 ounce of grains of paradise
[melegueta pepper], 1/2 ounce of saffron, and 1 ounce of sugar. The
finished effect—with sweet, sour, and spicy flavors—would not be
unlike a good barbecue sauce.
Take the leanest part of the loin, without bone, skin, or sinews, and
cut it across in large pieces of 6 ounces each. Sprinkle them with
salt, fennel flowers, or a condiment of pounded common spices.
Place four slices of fat-streaked prosciutto for each piece and let it
stay pressed down with this composition and a bit of rose vinegar
and sapa [concentrated grape juice] for three hours. Then, skewer
them with a slice of bacon between one and another piece with a
sage leaf or bay. Let it cook over a moderate fire. When cooked,
serve hot with a sauce over them made from whatever drippings
fall from them mixed with the left over from the pressing, which will
give the sauce a bit of body, and give it the color of saffron.

Scappi’s Opera is an encyclopedic tome, the largest and most
detailed cookbook ever written at the time. The recipes are precise
and clearly worded; the procedures described are detailed and easy
to follow. It is almost scientific in its organization and presentation.
There’s also an excellent translation in English now.

Scappi was willing to go very far afield for novel recipes. One of
his most interesting is an extraordinarily detailed description of
how to make couscous, or as he calls it succussu, which comes
from North Africa. It is essentially semolina flour formed into tiny
135
grain-like bits of pasta, dried and then steamed over a pot of rich
broth. The ingredients are not rare or costly; what impresses here is
the technical mastery of the chef.

Although Scappi’s work is in many ways the culmination of
culinary practices originating in the Middle Ages, the precision and
thoroughness with which he treats ingredients and procedures mark
this perhaps as the first modern cookbook. There is nothing produced
anywhere in Europe that matches Scappi’s encyclopedic and detailed
cooking directions—and there won’t be for another century.
Lecture 19: Papal Rome and the Spanish Golden Age
Granado’s Cookbook
 The nation of Spain first emerged with the marriage of Ferdinand of
Aragon and Isabella of Castile. They were still very much separate
countries, but with their grandson Charles V on the throne, they
were finally politically united as well as religiously unified. The
Jews were expelled, and the Moors were conquered.
136

However, the Spanish were still particularly paranoid about
outsiders—especially all of the Jews who had converted to
Christianity to save their necks but may have been secretly
practicing Judaism at home. This was an extremely urgent problem
for the church because although they had no authority over someone
who was an openly professing Jew, they do over converts, and any
backsliding would be considered heresy.

The church took it as their responsibility to hunt down and
punish new Christians secretly practicing Judaism as part of the
Inquisition. Even if they couldn’t catch you by offering you some
sausage or ham and seeing whether you would eat it, the Inquisition
hired secret informants to report if someone was lighting Sabbath
candles or if a person was cooking meals on Friday before sundown
to be eaten the next day.

Religion for the Spanish provided perhaps the strongest defining
elements of national identity, as did their national cuisine and
especially the ways that it was different from the Jews and Moors,
who they were still hunting down. Some of the most obvious
differences were pork, rabbit, and shellfish—none of which are
kosher, but are fixated on by the Spanish.

The first major early modern cookbook was Diego Granado’s
Libro del Arte de Cozina (“Book on the Art of Cooking”). It is no
coincidence that it’s published right at the start of the new reign
of Philip III in 1599. (There were none published during the reign
of Philip II.) Unfortunately, almost all of it is pirated directly from
Scappi, without attribution, so it’s not really a Spanish cookbook.

The era of Don Quixote, in the 17th century, explains partly why
Spain sets the culinary fashion throughout Europe. Despite the
fact that Spain now had an enormous empire stretching around
the world, it also had serious economic problems. This was partly
because of financing expensive wars—trying to hold onto the
Netherlands, for example—but it was also because the American
colonies grew financially independent.

Oddly, Spain was also comparatively depopulated, which made
it quite different from the rest of Europe. Aside from emigration
to the New World and expulsions, the economy was to a great
extent controlled by powerful Castilian nobles who preferred to
live in leisure, buying paintings and sipping chocolate, rather than
investing their savings or innovating. This meant that agriculture
stagnated, and Spain was even forced to import grain.

Ironically, despite economic disaster, the Spanish court blithely
went about the business of entertaining itself in grand style and, for
a brief time, was at the forefront in matters artistic and gastronomic.
In the reigns of Philip III and IV, great artists and poets were
patronized, and Spanish fashions were imitated everywhere. For a
while, Spain had the most dazzling court in Europe.
Maceras’s Cookbook
 The first cookbook of the Golden Age was actually not written for
the court, but for a college dining hall: Domingo Hernández de
137
Lecture 19: Papal Rome and the Spanish Golden Age
Maceras’s Libro del Arte de Cozina of 1607. Maceras worked as a
college chef for the Colegio Mayor de San Salvador de Oviedo in
the University of Salamanca for 40 years.

Although the students seem to have been well fed, his recipes are
distinct from courtly cuisine and more closely reflect ordinary
eating habits. Oddly, it was written in a period of severe food
shortage and runaway inflation. It is possible that this cookbook
reflects the chef’s dreams rather than the daily fare he hashed up for
the students.

Internationally, Spain was most associated with complex stews. One
of the most renowned dishes that was enjoyed all across Europe
was the olla podrida, which literally translates as “rotten pot,” but
signified an earthenware pot, or olla, filled with diverse ingredients.
Maceras’s recipe basically includes whatever is at hand—lamb,
beef, salt pork and pig’s feet, sausages, tongue, pigeon, hare,
chickpeas, garlic and turnips—all cooked in one pot and served
with a mustard made of grape must.
Montiño’s Cookbook
 The major monument of Baroque Spanish cooking is called Arte de
Cocina, Pastelería, Vizcochería, y Conservería (“Art of Cooking,
Making Pastry, Biscuits, and Conserves”) by Francisco Martínez
Montiño in 1611. Montiño was chef to King Philip III and arguably
had greater resources at his disposal than any other chef in Europe,
yet his recipes show no obscene profusion of ingredients and no
bizarre juxtapositions of flavor or wildly extravagant imports.

138
The vast majority of Montiño’s recipes are for elegant pies, pastries,
little meatballs, and other foods that can be easily picked up and
eaten by hand. He also has an intense affection for stuffing meats
and vegetables like eggplants and onions. One can easily imagine
choosing freely from a series of simple and elegant little dishes
appearing on a table—something like the ancestor of tapas.
M
Pork Chorizos
ontiño’s recipe for pork chorizos seems not only typically
Spanish, but also direct, austere, and served without fuss
or garnish. It is a recipe that can easily stand on its own.
Take pork meat that is more lean than fat, and put it in a marinade
of just wine with a touch of vinegar. The meat should be cut into
little radish-sized knobs and the marinade should be sparing, no
more than to cover. Season with spices and salt and let it sit for
24 hours. Fill up the chorizos. They should be a bit plump. Cook
them in water. These can be kept all year. Eating them cooked, there
should be so little vinegar that you can’t sense it before eating them.

Like other Spanish cookbooks, Montiño offers a variety of dishes
based on fish, spinach, garbanzo beans, and squash. These were
especially important for fast days. There are also dozens of egg
dishes, many of which use fresh cheese, and recipes for roast lamb,
kid, rabbit, and game. A few basic procedures are used for all
available foods.
Suggested Reading
Albala, The Banquet.
Braudel, Mediterranean.
Scappi, Opera.
Culinary Activity
Brisavoli
The descendant of this recipe still survives in Italy and among Italian
Americans, but the flavor combinations speak of centuries past—when
sweetness was still in vogue with meat, as were a wide range of spices and
139
Lecture 19: Papal Rome and the Spanish Golden Age
other exotic flavorings. Light-colored veal was by far the preferred flesh,
and what Scappi calls for in the earlier recipe, polpette, are very thin slices,
about the size of your hand (or as we would call them today, scallopine).
As usual, Scappi offers many options for techniques, but grilling really does
work wonderfully. Scappi used both liquefied lard and lardo, an unsmoked
but cured pork fat. The orange juice he would have used was the sour Seville
rather than a sweet orange. A combination of orange and lime juice will work
well. The pressing technique aids the marination, and you can accomplish
this by putting some plastic wrap and a book on top of the slices of meat and
then piling heavy objects on top.
Barolomeo Scappi, Opera, p. 29
To Make Brisavoli of lean Veal meat, fried and cooked on the grill. When
you have cut the brisavoli in the same way that you cut veal for polette, and
have beaten with the side of a knife on one side and the other, sprinkle with
a little vinegar, Greek wine, in which you’ve soaked some crushed garlic,
along with fennel pollen, or crushed coriander, pepper, and salt sprinkled
on, then let it sit under a press, one on top of the other, for an hour. Then if
you like fry in lard or unsmoked bacon fat, first having floured with very fine
flour, and fry just until you give it a little color, so it remains tender. Serve
hot with sugar, cinnamon, and orange juice over, or with a sauce made of
vinegar, sugar, cinnamon, cloves and nutmeg.
But if you want to use the grill, after it has been seasoned, and pressed, place
it on the grill with a slice of lardo for each, so the brisavoli remain more
tender, letting them cook over a low fire and turning them often. The smoke
that comes from the fat dripping into the grill gives them the most perfect
aroma and best taste. When cooked, they should be served with one of the
sauces mentioned above, which were served with these when fried.
These brisavoli in place of putting them on a grill, you can cook them in a
casserole, moistened with lard with the same slices of lardo above, and serve
with a sauce, and orange juice.
Conejo en Escabeche (p. 655)
Escabeche is a very typical Spanish dish made normally with fish or
fowl, but it also works wonderfully with rabbit. This recipe comes from a
140
manuscript written by Juan Valles entitled Regalo de la Vida Humana, which
was composed in the middle of the century. It shows how spices were still
common. Compare it to the recipe that follows—from Spain in the next
century. Incidentally, escabeche is meant to be kept out at room temperature
for about a week, but if you are squeamish, feel free to use a refrigerator.
Roast the rabbits very well and then cut them in pieces and place in a new
pot or in a similar glazed earthenware vase, placing between the pieces of
rabbit laurel leaves and a bit of chopped sage, and then make the escabeche
and put it on each in a way so the pieces are well covered with the escabeche,
and make the escabeche in this way: Take two parts of good white wine and
one of strong vinegar, but in this you must take consideration if the vinegar
is strong or weak, because if it is weak it will be necessary to add more,
and add enough lemons cut, and grind cloves, pepper and ginger and a
little nutmeg and let it boil, salt to taste and put over the rabbits, but be
advised that the rabbits must be cold when you add the escabeche. Some add
a little oil in this escabeche and for rabbits it works but not for partridges or
other birds.
Consider how this use of spices is related to that in medieval Persia and in
ancient India.
Pork Chorizo
(from Francisco Martinéz Montiño, Arte de Cocina, Pastelería,
Vizcochería, y Conservería of 1611, p. 202)
Try to make these sausages yourself. You don’t need any equipment at all;
you just need some sausage casings, which can be bought online or from a
butcher. Use beef middles, which are about the size used for thick bratwurst.
The only concession that you should make to modernity is using a pinch of
potassium nitrite (pink salt) to prevent botulism. It also brings out the bright
red color and flavor of the pork. Cut the pork, preferably shoulder with about
20 percent fat, by hand with a cleaver; stuff it into the casings by hand; and
tie it off with string. Prick the sausages with a pin a few times to prevent
bursting when you poach them, very gently. Notice the restrained hand in
flavoring and seasoning, which is characteristic of the court of Felipe III of
Spain. The most obvious ingredient missing is chili powder, which was not
141
yet used in Spain—at least not at court, though it had been discovered in the
New World a century before.
Lecture 19: Papal Rome and the Spanish Golden Age
Take pork meat that is more lean than fat, and put it in a marinade of just
wine with a touch of vinegar. The meat should be cut into little radish-sized
knobs and the marinade should be sparing, no more than to cover. Season
with spices and salt and let it sit for 24 hours. Fill up the chorizos. They
should be a bit plump. Cook them in water. These can be kept all year. Eating
them cooked, there should be so little vinegar that that you barely sense it
before eating them.
142
The Birth of French Haute Cuisine
Lecture 20
J
ust as Italy passed the culinary leadership to Spain in the early 17th
century, France took the lead in the mid-17th century. Beyond the sheer
number of cookbooks that were produced, the French took the lead in
the ways that they innovated—either by creating new recipes and techniques
or by creating new fashions that were imitated everywhere. Everyone in
Europe imitated French fashion, architecture, language, diplomacy, and,
indisputably, cooking. This lecture will sample from cookbooks by four of
the giants responsible for the creation of early French haute cuisine.
France as a Culinary Model
 France is perhaps the model of how nation-states are constructed
in the early modern period. It becomes territorially intact. The
power of the king becomes greater than any of the nobles under
his jurisdiction. It has a national army paid for by taxes. France is,
therefore, one of the first countries to have a monopoly on violence.
Noble warriors have become courtiers, which probably explains
why manners appear in Europe.

Like in Spain, there is a class of people in France with a lot of money
to spend, but there is also a middle class of wealthy merchants,
townsmen, and wealthy farmers providing vegetables, cheeses, or
wine to the cities. This class will be especially important in the 18th
century and in the French Revolution.

The reason that France had a bourgeoisie while Spain didn’t has to
do with government policy. Spain spent a fortune fighting wars—
mostly over religion. They also thought that because they had silver
coming from the New World, they could spend as much as they
wanted and never run out. They were mistaken and eventually
ran out of cash, which was combined with a bad tax policy,
depopulation, rights granted to nobles, and incompetent kings who
were very poorly advised by greedy ministers.
143
Lecture 20: The Birth of French Haute Cuisine
144

France did none of these. Wars were fought only for profit, and they
won those that they got involved in. They had a series of excellent
kings with brilliant ministers, and the state consciously sponsored
trade, industry, crafts, and agriculture. They fully realized that if the
wealth doesn’t get spread around, it’s like blood, and it clots. It gets
stuck in one organ when it needs to circulate to be useful to the
entire body politic.

Why the efflorescence of France occurs only in the 17th century has
largely to do with a series of disastrous civil wars in the late 16th
century, mostly over religion. Thus, in the period when Italy and
Spain are flourishing artistically, the French court was stagnating.
There were practically no cookbooks written, and what we know of
French fashion and cookery is that it was still pretty much medieval.

The only account we have of dining in the latter 16th century
describes the court of Henry III and is really bizarre. It’s a
satire called Description of the Isle of Hermaphrodites because
apparently Henry liked to wear makeup and dress like a woman.
Most interestingly, it says that everything was designed to shock
and surprise, and the effeminate courtiers actually used forks.

All that changes when we get to the 17th century. First, the civil
wars come to an end with the reign of Henry IV, who converted
to Catholicism and declared religious toleration. He was succeeded
by Louis XIII, whose prime minister was Cardinal Richelieu, who
effectively increased the power of the crown at the expense of
the nobles.

Louis XIV, the Sun King, ruled from 1643 to 1715. More than any
preceding ruler, Louis knew that to rule absolutely, he had to bring
nobles directly under his watchful eye, and he did this by building
the grandest palace Europe had ever seen—Versailles—and forcing
all the leading dignitaries, officials, churchmen, and nobles to live
there with him.

Versailles was not just a palace; it was an entire city staffed by
thousands of chefs, servants, suppliers, gardeners of the royal
orchards and vegetable beds, and an entire army. Practically every
daily occurrence at court was governed by a complex, formalized,
and public ritual, especially eating. This was a fantastic place for
the arts to flourish—especially cooking.

This period is so important in the history of cuisine because it was
here that what we call modern French classical, or haute, cuisine
was born, although it wouldn’t be called haute cuisine until much
later. Cookbook authors defined what elegant cooking should be like
and how to do it. In codifying cuisine and making rules, it becomes
something totally different and something uniquely French.
La Varenne’s Cookbook
 The first cookbook to make the decisive break from culinary history
is Le Cuisinier François by François-Pierre de La Varenne. It was
published in 1651, with a translation into English only two years
later. The essence of this new cuisine lies in the fact that foods are
increasingly cooked in a way that accentuated and intensified the
flavor of the main ingredient rather than contrasting with it, as the
sugar, spices, and vinegar of older cookbooks had.

Sauces were more often bound with a roux of flour and fat rather
than bread crumbs and sharp flavorings. Also, an increasing number
of sauces are based on butter. Herbs are used to add a subtle flavor
to a sauce. A consommé is clarified with egg whites. Equally
important is the procedural logic of La Varenne’s recipes. A few basic
preparations, such as a rich stock, can be kept on hand and reduced
(that is, boiled quickly to evaporate away some of the water) to make
a variety of sauces to accompany many different foods.

Many of the older standbys, such as exotic birds, game, large fish,
and whale, disappear. Although it would take some time, spices
were increasingly banished to desserts, where we still find them
today. Fresh herbs and aromatics, such as onions and mushrooms,
145
Veal Epigramme (Braised Lamb)
(legs or knuckles of veal)
A
ccording to La Varenne’s cookbook, a whitening procedure,
blanching or soaking, was done in cold water to remove
any blood or impurities from the meat.
Lecture 20: The Birth of French Haute Cuisine
After they are well whitened in fresh water, flowre them and pass
them in the pan with melted Lard (drippings from bacon) or fresh
Seam (rendered pork fat). Then, break them and put them in a pot
well seasoned with Salt, Pepper, Cloves, and a bundle of Herbs.
Put an onion with it, a little Broth and a few Capers, then flowre
them with some paste, and smother them with the Pot lid; seeth them
leasurely thus covered for the space of three houres, after which you
shall uncover them, and shall reduce your Sauce untill all be the
better thereby. Put some Mushrums to it, if you have any, then serve.
often took their place. This new culinary aesthetic stressed subtlety,
simplicity of preparation, and a logical order to the foods served.

Naturally, it took many years to totally break from ingrained culinary
habits. In La Varenne’s cookbook, there are as many medieval
recipes lingering as there are new ideas. However, the procedures
have changed. Salt and pepper (as well as cloves) are used to season,
along with aromatics. The meat is floured and seared, and the sauce
is reduced. The eventual impact of La Varenne’s new approach to
French cuisine would stretch across Europe.
Other French Cookbooks
 Le Cuisinier, by Pierre de Lune, appeared in 1656, shortly after La
Varenne’s cookbook. De Lune is credited with introducing several
further technical innovations: making regular use of the modern
bouquet garni—a bundle of herbs used for flavoring stocks and
stews—and offering one of the earliest sets of directions for making
146
a roux with flour, which he called “fried flour.” De Lune was chef to
the duke of Rohan, so his recipes reflect the best that money could
buy, which now meant refinement and elegant procedures rather
than rare and exotic ingredients, variety, and abundance.

Among late-17th-century French cookbooks, L’Art de Bien Traiter
of 1674 was the largest, most innovative, and important. Its author
was also a professional chef working for the noblest of patrons.
However, apart from his initials, L. S. R., we know practically
nothing about him. He is usually remembered today for his scathing
remarks about the vulgarity of earlier cookbooks.

Far more interesting, though, are the ways that L. S. R. anticipates
developments in haute cuisine yet to come, including his detailed
interest in sensory perceptions—the way food looks and feels in the
mouth and the subtle perfumes evoked by perfect cooking. His aim
was delicacy, refinement, and discernment, and L. S. R. instructed
his readers exactly how to achieve the effects desired.

The refinement of L. S. R.’s cookbook was achieved in large
measure by distancing himself from the culinary fashions of the
common rabble and especially from those of previous generations.

The most popular cookbook of the latter 17th century was François
Massialot’s Le Cuisinier Roïal et Bourgeois of 1691. Massialot
probably worked as a freelance caterer for the royal household, and
for whoever could pay for his services, and his connections at court
and the descriptions of meals served there made his cookbook a
continual success. Its popularity probably also has a lot to do with
the broad audience it addressed.

In terms of technique, several features of classical haute cuisine
also come into full light. There is extensive use of reduced stocks,
bound with a liaison of butter, cream, or eggs and garnished with
expensive ingredients like truffles or foie gras. The focus is on
concentrating flavors and reducing them to an essence, but one
147
Crayfish Soup
D
e Lune’s recipe for crayfish soup is a good example of
how chefs sought to intensify and concentrate the flavor
of the main ingredient and garnish it with other foods that
complement it as well as decorate the plate.
Lecture 20: The Birth of French Haute Cuisine
Wash the crayfish well, cook them in water with a bundle of herbs,
a bit of salt and butter. Then, draw out the tails and the legs, and
pound the shells, which you strain with the crayfish bouillon, and
place in a pot. Then, you put the tail and leg meat in a pan with a
bit of butter and fine herbs, well chopped, and you place them in
a pot or plate with the bouillon, the reddest you can strain. After,
simmer bread crusts with the bouillon, three or four finely chopped
mushrooms, arrange your crayfish and garnish the soup with roe
and mushrooms, lemon juice, and mushroom juice.
also finds humble ingredients and simple cuts of meat treated with
respect and cooked in ways that are straightforward.

In fact, when planning an entire dinner, several fonds, or flavor
bases, would have been prepared ahead by a large kitchen staff.
The flavor bases could then be used in dozens of different sauces,
braises, or ragouts. This is one of the most important organizing
principles of French cuisine from this period to the present.
Suggested Reading
Arndt, Culinary Biographies.
Glanville, Elegant Eating.
Kaplan, Bakers of Paris.
Mennell, All Manners of Food.
Watts, Meat Matters.
148
Wheaton, Savoring the Past.
Young, Apples of Gold.
Culinary Activity
The following recipe should be made with what are known as “baby”
artichokes—although they are not actually younger. They are merely small
flower buds and are much more tender. This is a good example of how
recipes have changed in late-17th-century France: The flavor of the main
ingredient is accentuated rather than hidden and stands largely on its own.
The use of alcohol in the batter is quite ingenious as well. It’s not merely
for flavor; it evaporates quickly, drawing out moisture and leaving the fried
batter very crisp. A large pot of oil is the most practical way to do this today,
but it is also incomparably delicious fried in rendered lard.
Fried Artichokes
(from L. S. R.’s L’Art de Bien Traiter of 1674, p. 86)
Choose the youngest, trim down the leaves and remove the choke; let them
soak some time so as to lose their bitterness. When you have drained them,
flour them or batter them in a mixture made of flour, fine salt, white wine or
milk, some egg yolks, all mixed and beaten together, and make this as thin
as you can. Dip your artichokes in, and when covered, fry them in lard or
butter or very hot oil, when they are properly cooked, so they have become
dry, golden and crispy, remove them so they can drain, and meanwhile fry
some parsley, which you have dried, the greenest possible, as the garnish,
and laden your artichokes, on which you sprinkle some fine salt and a little
good vinegar, however your guests desire.
149
Elizabethan England, Puritans, Country Food
Lecture 21
I
Lecture 21: Elizabethan England, Puritans, Country Food
n this lecture, you will learn that England has had a very rich and varied
culinary past—one in which there was a constant battle between native
and continental fashions and country and courtly cooking. This had a lot
to do with their religious situation, being Protestant but with both Puritan
and Catholic minorities, and their political development as a constitutional
monarchy with a powerful landed nobility and gentry. At times, courtly
and continental fashions dominated, and at others, simple country tastes
prevailed. Sometimes, narrow nationalism made them shun the strange and
foreign, and at other times, they went mad for imported oddities.
England in the 16th Century
 England in the 16th century was also one of the new powerful nationstates with a strong solvent monarchy. It, too, had a Reformation,
but unlike the bloody civil wars in France, England under Henry
VIII broke away from Rome peacefully. The Reformation in
England took place in Parliament, which gave that body a measure
of power unlike the rest of Europe. The nature of shared power
made England’s culinary heritage unique because patronage and
power was not centered only at court.
150

One perhaps unexpected outcome of the Reformation was the
dissolution of the monasteries, so many of their functions—such
as keeping bees for wax, growing grapes for sacramental wine,
and tending herb gardens—came to an end. Those monastic
properties were sold to private individuals, people with their own
independent power.

We know something about the cuisine of Henry’s reign partly
through the accounts of banquets thrown by his principal minister,
Cardinal Wolsey. These lavish affairs were often set up in
“banquetting houses,” and the food was still thoroughly medieval,
involving huge wild animals served with spicy sauces.
To Make a Dyschefull of Snowe
I
n addition to appearing in A Proper Newe Booke of Cokerye,
the following recipe is found in Scappi’s cookbook and other
continental cookbooks and was apparently very popular
across Europe.
Take a pottell of swete thycke creame and the whytes of eyghte
egges, and beate them together wyth a spone, then putte them in
youre creame and a saucerfull of Rosewater, and a dyshe full of
Suger wyth all, then take a styke and make it cleane, and than cutte
it in the end foure square, and therwith beate all the aforesayde
thynges together, and ever as it ryseth take it of and put it into a
Collaunder, this done take one apple and set it in the myddes of
it, and a thycke bush of Rosemary, and set it in the myddes of the
platter, then cast your snowe uppon the Rosemarye and fyll your
platter therwith. and yf you have wafers caste some in wyth all and
thus seve them forthe.

There are a few cookbooks from this period. As early as 1500, a
small anonymous book titled This Is the Boke of Cokery appeared,
and in 1508, a carving manual called Here Begynneth the Boke of
Kervynge appeared. Both are still pretty much medieval.

About 1545, at the end of Henry’s reign, there appeared another
anonymous cookbook: A Proper Newe Booke of Cokerye, which
begins to depart from earlier medieval texts, particularly in the
appearance of fruit tarts and other pies with crusts that were meant
to be eaten. There is also evidence of continental influence.

When Henry died in 1547 and his young and sickly son Edward
took the throne, his advisors initiated a full and thorough Protestant
reform throughout the country. Theologically, England joined the
Swiss (Calvinist) tradition. In addition, a Puritanical spirit was
unleashed, one that looked with derision upon the supposedly
151
Lecture 21: Elizabethan England, Puritans, Country Food
sacred festivals that dotted the Christian calendar and took a harsh
attitude toward food and pleasures of the body.

When young Edward died, the nation without hesitation proclaimed
Mary Queen of England—even though she was Catholic. England
reverted to full obedience to the Pope and the Catholic Church
for several years, and then they switched just as quickly back to
Protestantism under Elizabeth.

The importance of this is that England maintained both Catholic
and Puritan minorities—the former attracted to the continent
aesthetically, and the latter tending toward simple, native tastes.
There are many other factors involved, but this makes England
sort of schizophrenic gastronomically. England was nonetheless
dazzling in the reign of Elizabeth.

In the 1580s and 1590s, a spate of cookbooks was published. The
first of these was The Good Huswifes Handmaide for the Kitchen,
which appeared in 1588. It is addressed to a woman cooking for
or managing a household, presumably a wealthy one located in the
country because many of the recipes call for wild game.

The next important cookbook produced in England first appeared
in 1596: Thomas Dawson’s The Good Huswifes Jewell. Like The
Good Huswifes Handmaide, it reflects new ideas in cookery. It
contains, for example, the first recipe for sweet potatoes. It also
includes directions for making various marzipan figures. Although
many of the recipes call for boiling ingredients, they also show a
fairly simple and direct way of dealing with them.
England in the Early 17th Century
 Cookery in the early 17th century did not differ that much from that
of the previous century. There was a new king on the throne—the
Scotsman James I, who was not quite as popular as Elizabeth.

152
Gervase Markham was one of the most prolific author/compilers of
this generation, writing about a variety of topics that would appeal
to the owner or steward and housekeeper of a typical country house.
With titles covering agriculture, husbandry, medicine for people
and animals, and cooking, he provided readers, probably landed
gentry, with practically everything they would need to know.

The English Housewife of 1615 (which then appeared in expanded
editions for the next two decades) is his foray into cookery, but it
also contains sections on distillation, brewing beer, baking bread,
making cloth, curing ailments, and even the virtues requisite for
the ideal housewife. It is clear from some of his recipes that the
household was wealthy enough to afford fashionable and exotic
Mediterranean ingredients worthy of royal tables.

When James I died, his son Charles I inherited the throne.
Immediately, people began to notice changes at court. There
was a new style of clothes and architecture, modeled closely on
continental fashions, which seemed foreign to Englishmen. After a
series of political blunders, a civil war erupted that succeeded not
only in removing Charles’s head and abolishing the monarchy, but
also in instituting a godly republic led by Oliver Cromwell and a
host of puritanically minded parliamentarians.

The significance of this episode for the history of food is that the
pleasures of the palate became suspect. All sensory indulgence
was deemed sinful. The theaters were closed, and the village
festivals were banned. Anything redolent of paganism was purified,
following strict biblical authority.

Without a royal court, one might think the arts of the table
languished; in fact, they didn’t, and Cromwell kept a very nice wine
cellar. However, most of the great chefs seem to have just gone into
hiding because a magnificent court reemerged as if overnight with
the restoration of Charles II in 1660 as king.

For the rest of the 17th century, the full splendor of the royal court
returned, but the power of parliament also remained strong, leaving
England with a constitutional monarchy. England, in contrast to
153
the continent, developed its dining traditions closely tied to the
stately manor and its produce. Cookbooks reflect this difference;
the ingredients and procedures are simpler, and the dishes tend to
be more traditional.

England was still profoundly influenced by dining customs
abroad, but the constant pull between native and foreign, simple
and complex, royal and bourgeois would continue to give English
cookery two different faces. The fact that many cookbooks address
a middle-class audience also makes them quite different from other
European works.
Lecture 21: Elizabethan England, Puritans, Country Food
England in the Late 17th Century
 The first crop of cookbooks published after the Restoration was
thoroughly courtly. The first of these, The Accomplisht Cook by
Robert May, is one of the longest and most detailed of 17th-century
F
To Make a Potato Pie
rom William Rabisha’s The Whole Body of Cookery
Dissected of 1661, the following recipe is a good example of
how new ingredients were appropriated in traditional recipes
and garnished with a strange mixture of local and exotic items. The
effect is very much Baroque.
Boyl your Spanish Potatoes (not overmuch) cut them forth in
slices as thick as your thumb, season them with Nutmeg, Cinamon,
Ginger, and Sugar; your Coffin being ready, put them in, over the
bottom; add to them the Marrow of about three Marrow-bones,
seasoned as aforesaid, a handful of stoned Raisons of the Sun, some
quartered Dates, Orangado, Cittern (citron), with Ringo-roots
sliced, put butter over it, and bake them: let their lear be a little
Vinegar, Sack and Sugar, beaten up with the yolk of an Egg, and
a little drawn butter; when your pie is enough, pour it in, shake it
together, scrape on Sugar, garnish it, and serve it up.
154
cookbooks. May was a professional cook, working for several
Catholic noble households. The work was first published in 1660
immediately after the king returned.

May’s cooking procedures and ingredients are traditionally English,
but they also reflect the latest continental fashions and Baroque
taste. Like his patrons, he looked to Catholic Europe for aesthetic
inspiration, but he still remained thoroughly English. This can be
seen throughout his recipes.
England in the 18th Century
 In contrast to the Baroque cooking of late-17th-century England,
there was an entirely different side of English cooking that was
based on the country house with cookbooks addressed to women.
Authors of these types of cookbooks included Hannah Woolley, E.
Smith Twiddy, and Hannah Glasse.

There are dozens of this type of cookbook in the 18th century, all
of which stole from each other. These country estate cookbooks
support the notion that there are two very different sides to English
cookery, and one might argue down to the present that there is
still the relatively simple, local, and traditional versus the exotic,
continental, and innovative.

It is also no surprise that these books appealed to the American
colonists as well, especially those who had their own country
estates. E. Smith Twiddy’s cookbook was the first cookbook
published in the colonies, in Williamsburg.
Suggested Reading
Bennet, Ale, Beer, and Brewsters.
Dawson, The Good Huswifes Jewell.
Glasse, Art of Cookery.
The Good Huswifes Handmaide for the Kitchen.
155
Hess, Martha Washington’s Book of Cookery.
Lehmann, British Housewife.
Markham, English Housewife.
May, The Compleat Cook.
Mennell, All Manners of Food.
Sim, Food and Feast.
Smith, Compleat Housewife.
Thirsk, Food in Early Modern England.
Lecture 21: Elizabethan England, Puritans, Country Food
Culinary Activity
Chicken pot pie is a direct descendant of the following recipe, but notice how
much the contents have changed. Also consider how, though it is directed
toward housewives (meaning relatively small households), it still contains
a very large presentation dish. Could you infer from this that housewives
were expected on occasion to entertain large numbers of guests? Or is this
perhaps merely aspirational—much like a person today reading a recipe or
entertaining instructions or even watching it on television but never actually
intending to cook the meal? The historian can only guess, but it is an enticing
pie nonetheless, and it can certainly be made on a smaller scale for your
friends or family, as the opening lines suggest. Don’t be tempted to skimp
on the sugar; it is delectable. This is before sugar was banished from savory
dishes, and it also reflects the serious Elizabethan sweet tooth.
To Make a Chickin Pye
(from Good Hous-wives Treasurie, 1588)
If you will make one so bigge, take nine or ten Chickins of a moneth olde,
trusse them round and breake their bones, take to season them withall a
quarter of cloves and Mace, a litte Pepper and Salte, as much as you think
will season your Pye two or three Orenge peeles small shread, take the
marow of a shorte marow bone cleave it long waies and take out the marowe
as whole as you can, then cut it in foure or five peeces and put it in your pie
take halfe a pounde of Currans, a food hand full of Prunes, eight Dates,
fower cut in halfe and fower shred, a pounde of Suger with that in your
156
crust and all, half a dossen spoonefuls of Rosewater, so heate your Oven
reasonablye, and let it stand in two howers and a halfe or three howers, a
quarter of an hower before you draw it take three yolkes of egges, fower
or five spoonefulles of Rosewater, beat them together and let them boyle a
waume stir it still till you take it off, when it is somewhat coole put in three
or foure spoon full of Vergis and a little suger, and put it into your pye quish
your cover and so serve it in.
157
Dutch Treat—Coffee, Tea, Sugar, Tobacco
Lecture 22
I
Lecture 22: Dutch Treat—Coffee, Tea, Sugar, Tobacco
n this lecture, you will learn about the economy, agriculture, and
colonization in the 17th and 18th centuries—the age of mercantilism—
with a focus on the few foods that become major export items in global
trade. These foods are almost always expensive luxury items to start with, but
are eventually grown on a much larger scale and are consumed by everyone
across Europe, rich and poor alike. The general pattern that will emerge is
that colonies grow the crops either through the plantation system that uses
slave labor or by exploiting native labor and forcing them to produce the
crop for export by the imperial power.
Mercantilism
 A few items—sugar, coffee, tea, tobacco, and spices—completely
change the focus of the global economy. What is ironic is that they
are all entirely superfluous. They have no nutritional value and,
at best, supply a jolt of sweetness, caffeine, nicotine, or flavor to
the consumer.
158

The sad part is that consumers begin to buy these luxury items
instead of nutritious food, and people are being sold into slavery or
become pawns of the imperial trading companies, just so Europeans
can have these goods.

The Portuguese and Spanish were the first in the colonization
business, but in this era, they are muscled out by the new economic
powerhouses: England, the Netherlands, and France. In many cases,
it is not the countries themselves but powerful trading companies
like the Dutch East India Company that form these colonies
solely for profit, and they are usually granted monopolies by their
governments, so they become perversely wealthy.

The idea of a monopoly offends the capitalist free market mind,
but economic theories of the day, known as mercantilism, were
operating with some very different assumptions: 17th- and 18thcentury governments very strictly controlled their national
economies and heavily restricted imports by putting heavy duties
on them.

Mercantilist states also fix wages, fix prices, and encourage exports—
especially of locally manufactured goods. The idea is that this will
bring into the country money, which rulers can tax so that they can
build up their treasuries and wage war. They also assume that there is
a fixed volume of trade in the world, so the only way to gain wealth is
to muscle in on the trade of another nation. Hence, there was a whole
series of mercantilist wars over trade routes and colonies.
The Netherlands
 The Dutch—or the Dutch East India Company, which governs these
colonies—are the most successful mercantilist country. Realizing
that the Portuguese have had a monopoly on the spice trade for the
past century, the Dutch declare war and, one by one, steal nearly
every Portuguese colony or trading post in Asia. They burned
plantations on all but a few of their islands and strictly limited
production to keep prices high.

Although this technically was not slavery because they didn’t buy
and sell the local inhabitants, for all practical purposes, it was
because they forced the native peoples to work on their plantations.
In most cases, people who had been growing food for themselves—
called subsistence agriculture—were now producing luxury goods
for export, being paid money, and then having to buy food from the
Dutch suppliers, which creates a situation of total dependency.

The Dutch also made inroads into the China trade, which is in
tea, silk, and porcelain—all luxury items. They also got exclusive
rights to trade with Japan from an enclosed island near the city
of Nagasaki. That situation remained in place until the mid-19th
century and explains why Japan, longer than any other Asian nation,
remained uninfluenced by the West.
159
Lecture 22: Dutch Treat—Coffee, Tea, Sugar, Tobacco

For the time being, the Dutch colonies made the Dutch the
wealthiest nation on Earth. What also makes them unique is that
they don’t have a king or powerful nobility. When they fought to
free themselves from Spanish rule in the 16th century, they were
determined not to have a king, so they set up a republic, which
remained until the 19th century. As a result, there is a lot of wealth
that is spread across a large mercantile class, and they spend it.

These people were Calvinists, so they were supposed to be strict,
frugal, and sober and not spend a lot of money on finery and food.
Therefore, they invest much of their great wealth, but they also
spend money on nice but relatively somber things.

Dutch cooking tends to be very simple. They eat at a lot of fish,
beer, bread, butter, and cheese. There is one important Dutch
cookbook of this period called De Verstandige Kock (“The Sensible
Cook”). The cooking is really very plain, but there are a couple of
things they specialized in that came into American cooking via the
Dutch: pancakes, waffles, and cookies (all Dutch words). They’re
also crazy about pies.
England and France
 The next great mercantile power was England. Just like the
Netherlands, England tried to muscle in on world trade. They also
had their own East and West India companies, monopolies granted
specifically to compete with the Dutch. Like the Dutch, they began
their involvement in world trade by preying on Spanish shipping
during the war with Spain in the late 16th century.

160
The very first efforts to colonize the New World were in what is
now Virginia in the 1580s, and they were disastrous. The English
really only get going with colonization in the early 17th century;
they set up Jamestown in 1607. There’s a mad scramble to set up
colonies that would provide raw materials or foods to the mother
country and also provide markets for manufactured goods made
back in Europe.

The Southern colonies end up focusing on tobacco, cotton, rice
in the Carolinas. To work these huge plantations, they eventually
begin importing African slaves. Tobacco becomes all the rage in
Europe from the late 16th and early 17th centuries, and Virginia has a
virtual monopoly on the product for centuries.

Just as important are the British possessions in the Caribbean. In the
1650s, they steal Jamaica from the Spanish. The native population,
having been completely wiped out by European diseases, is
replaced with African slaves, who are put to work on English sugar
plantations. Sugar—as well as a by-product of the manufacturing
process, rum—now becomes a major article of trade for the English.
Down the road, they end up with many more possessions, including
Barbados, the Virgin Islands, and Bermuda.

There’s also the ragtag colony of New England, which in the 1630s
begins to fill up with all sorts of bizarre religious exiles. In the 17th
century, these colonies are pretty much left to themselves; they have
their own governments, issue their own money, and tax their own
citizens. They’re cut off from England politically, but economically,
they’re still closely tied. It’s only when the British try to draw them
more closely into the empire that there’s trouble.

The French get some of their own Caribbean colonies, including
Martinique and a few others, but they also obtain Quebec and a huge
swathe of North America that stretches down the Mississippi river
all the way to Louisiana (named after Louis XIV). Economically,
this is quite different from many of the other colonies because it is
mostly fur trappers that settle here.
Colonial Products
 Sugar started out being an exclusive luxury item that was consumed
only by the wealthiest of people, and even after it began to be
produced in the New World, there were still elite people using it
for sugar sculptures and in their foods. Around the mid-17th century,
that all begins to change. Once the Spanish-Portuguese monopoly
was broken, there were British and Dutch manufacturers importing
161

Because sugar was arriving in Europe in vast quantities, the price
plummets. However, that doesn’t matter in the least because it is
being marketed to a new consumer. It is now fobbed off on ordinary
people, and the demand for sugar becomes so great that the industry
just grows and grows. Europeans—and North Americans, of
course—become sugar addicts.

There are other colonial products that are even more convincingly
addictive. Tobacco is not just something that might make you fat or
give you cavities—it kills you. There were both social and medical
warnings against smoking, but business, trade, and wealth overrode
them, just as they often do today.
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
Lecture 22: Dutch Treat—Coffee, Tea, Sugar, Tobacco
their own sugar, and they developed a new manufacturing process
that replaced the old Mediterranean press.
Coffee is one of the most consumed beverages in the world.
162

There were a few other colonial monoculture crops. Chocolate,
which was drunk by the Aztecs and taken up enthusiastically by the
Spanish nobles, was the perfect drink for lazy courtiers whose ideal
in life was not to be great businessmen, but to inherit wealth, live
off rents, and never lift a finger. Chocolate relaxes you and makes
you fat, so it is maybe not a surprise that it became the drink of
choice in Spain.

However, in Protestant Northern Europe, where making money is
the name of the game, you have to be alert, wired, and able to stay
awake for long hours to watch after your investments. It’s maybe
not surprising that coffee dominates there. In the 17th century,
coffeehouses opened across Europe, especially in London. These
were places where people went to socialize, hash out business
deals, and draw up contracts.

Why tea replaced coffee in England is just a matter of politics. The
English had been buying tea in China and wanted to protect the
trade of the East India Company, so they lowered the tariff on tea to
practically nothing and raised it on coffee. The English didn’t have
coffee plantations, so they promoted tea. Later, the British figured
out that they could grow tea in India, which then became the major
supplier to the empire of fermented black teas.
Suggested Reading
Cowan, Social Life of Coffee.
Gold, Danish Cookbooks.
Norton, Sacred Gifts, Profane Pleasures.
Pendergast, Uncommon Grounds.
Schivelbusch, Tastes of Paradise.
163
Culinary Activity
Lecture 22: Dutch Treat—Coffee, Tea, Sugar, Tobacco
Though Dutch cooking in the 17th century was fairly simple, the following
dish includes expensive imported spices. Its direct descendant, introduced
into what was then the colony of New Amsterdam, we know now as
doughnuts.
Verstandige Cok Olie-koecken
(adapted from The Sensible Cook, ed. Peter Rose, p. 78)
Take six cups of flour, and add two cups of raisins that have been soaked in
warm water. Add six peeled, cored, and chopped apples; two cups of chopped
almonds; and a teaspoon each of ground cinnamon, ginger, and cloves. Add
a small bowl of melted butter and a packet of instant yeast. Add enough milk
to make a very thick batter, and let it rise for about an hour. Then, heat a pot
of oil (to about 360 to 375 degrees), and with two spoons, drop balls of the
batter into the oil. Turn over when browned on one side, and remove when
puffy and golden brown. Let cool on a rack. Sprinkle with powdered sugar
if you like. The original recipe does not include sugar in the batter, but you
may use some—up to a cup, depending on your preference.
164
African and Aboriginal Cuisines
Lecture 23
T
hus far, you have been learning about large-scale global forces that
have rich, sophisticated cuisines based on ingredients from all over
the world. However, a cuisine does not have to be powerful and
wealthy to be sophisticated and interesting in its own right. To try to balance
the European narrative, this lecture will touch on a few other indigenous
traditions—sub-Saharan Africa and aboriginal Australia—just before the
point when they start to succumb to global forces. In this lecture, you will
be presented with some of the basic ingredients and techniques that are
prevalent through much of the continent of Africa.
African Cuisine
 At the heart of most African cuisines is a starchy porridge that can
be made of nearly any grain, tuber, or starchy fruit. Typically, it is
pounded, cooked in a common pot, and eaten with the hands; it is
rolled into little balls and used as a vehicle for other foods. In west
Africa, it is called fufu.

Many of the ingredients used to make the starch bases were
introduced since the globalization of the 16th century. African
cuisine very easily adapts to new ingredients out of practical
necessity, but the same basic structure of the meal and way of eating
remains intact—at least up until recently.

Throughout history, Africa gave the world watermelons (and
probably other melons as well), beans, okra, cola nuts, tamarind,
palms for palm oil, and, perhaps the most important, finger millet
and sorghum, which were domesticated in Africa. They also
introduced New World species like chilies, tomatoes, and peanuts.

Practically all of these ingredients—vegetables, meats, beans,
and flavorings—go into a soupy stew that is eaten with the starch
base. Cooking technology doesn’t get much beyond a stewpot
165
Lecture 23: African and Aboriginal Cuisines
placed over a fire or on a rack for grilling. Cooking usually takes
place outside.

Much of the continent still lives at the subsistence level; people
still grow most of the food they consume, or it is bought and sold
at a local level. Famines are still frequent there, and even where
there’s not true famine, malnutrition is a very serious problem—
not to mention all sorts of nasty diseases, including elephantiasis,
shistosomiasis, and AIDS.

Africa is among the poorest places on Earth, but the simplicity of
the cuisine doesn’t just have to do with poverty. In Africa, there
has always traditionally been only one class. Everyone makes a
living the same way, and the few individuals who may stick out
either because they’re rulers, tribal elders, or medicine men don’t
constitute a separate class. The result is that everyone eats the same
foods, and eating habits are very slow to change.

Another important factor in African cuisine is that many people
remained in a hunting-and-gathering economy far longer than in
most places. They made the transition to agriculture very slowly,
and in most places, it wasn’t complete until modern times. From
about 9,000 years ago, most Africans were seminomadic and
practiced a combination of hunting, gathering, and agriculture.
Indigenous Crops
 Of the crops that are indigenous to Africa, the most important is the
yam. The flesh of a yam is pure white and more like a turnip than
a soft sweet potato. Yams are useful because you can plant them,
forget about them, and come back months later. Africans ate yams
by cooking them until soft and mashing them into a starchy mass to
make fufu, which forms the bulk of the diet.

166
Another native crop is sorghum, which looks a lot like a small
cornstalk, but the seeds grow on the top in a big, bushy head. The
seeds are tiny but very nutritious; they contain more calories by
weight than corn and have less fat and more protein. Another food
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
Sorghum is grown as one of Africa’s major cereal grains.
Africa gave the rest of the world is millet, which is used just like
yam and sorghum—cooked into a solid mush that you can pick up
with your fingers.

The black-eyed pea is another African crop, and it was introduced to
Europe in classical times. It was the standard bean there before New
World varieties. All of these legumes and vegetables along with
meat are thrown into a stew—whatever you have at hand, basically,
cooked one way. As a cooking medium, Africa also has palm oil,
red and white. It’s used in stews (or nowadays to deep-fry). There’s
also palm butter. Palm trees can be tapped and apparently yield a
few gallons of juice in a day.

In terms of seasonings, melegueta pepper comes from the west
coast of Africa. Africans also made salt from wood ashes.
Tamarinds, now spread throughout South America and Asia, are
native to Africa. Kola nuts were typically sliced into thin wedges
167
and chewed for hours. Kola nuts are supposedly quite bitter, but
they have an enormous amount of caffeine.

There aren’t many African native domesticated animals, except for
guinea fowl, which were common everywhere in the Old World
until they were replaced by turkey.
Lecture 23: African and Aboriginal Cuisines
Changes in African Cuisine
 African food doesn’t really change; it’s really only a matter of
new ingredients being used the same way. The most important
connection for east Africa was with the Middle East and,
eventually, with Persia at the time that Islam was introduced. The
most important food they introduced was rice, which joined yams
as a major staple. However, rice can only be grown in places with
enough water, so it didn’t replace millet and sorghum.
168

Limes and other citrus fruits were also introduced from Asia. They
are still very important and are grown all over the place. Coconuts,
tropical fruits, ginger, and typical Middle Eastern spices and
flavorings, like cumin and garlic, were also introduced. All of these
products were introduced basically because east Africa was now
linked up with the trade routes traveling across the Indian Ocean,
linking the Middle East to India and East Asia.

The next major transformation came via the Portuguese, who
started exporting slaves from Africa to the New World. They also
brought New World foods to Africa. Some of these, including corn,
were immediately adopted. Corn has the advantage of being safe
from birds, unlike millet and sorghum. Even more important is
cassava, which they ground, fermented, and roasted, making gari
flour—which is still a major staple throughout Africa. Yams were
not entirely displaced, but they were to a large extent.

There are also important flavorings introduced from America.
The most typical is peanuts, which are ground up into a kind of
peanut butter and thrown into stews. The same is true of tomatoes.
It might seem an odd combination, but tomatoes and peanuts in a
soup or stew is one of the most typical flavor combinations, along
with chilis.

There really aren’t any African recipes—just a few basic techniques
used for a handful of ingredients. There’s a very interesting account
of African cooking written by a slave named Olauda Equiano in the
West Indies in the 18th century. The food he described is very simple:
goat meat or poultry, pepper, plantains, yams, beans, and corn.

Equiano also mentions some interesting customs, including the
fact that the head of the household eats alone, and the wives and
slaves eat afterward. It is still customary for men and women to
eat separately. He also mentions that a bit of stew is always poured
on the ground to feed the ancestors. Equiano also stresses the
importance of hand washing.

In general, Africans don’t eat off individual plates; instead, there’s
a common bowl (or sets of bowls), and everyone takes from it with
their hands. Oddly, they don’t usually drink during a meal, but there
is alcohol, including various kinds of beer fermented from grains
and fruits.

Africans don’t have many food avoidances. Apparently, they once
would not eat primates, but there’s a huge trade in smoked monkeys
now. In fact, several species are threatened with extinction. Many
African peoples don’t eat eggs, and in Ethiopia and southward, fish
are taboo.
Aboriginal Australia
 Aboriginal Australia provides an interesting point of contrast
with other cultures, primarily because its encounter with the West
happens so late and so tumultuously, and such an entirely different
cuisine comes with a completely transplanted culture that the two
really don’t mix. That is, the English cuisine that arrives in the 19th
century does not adopt local plants and animals, and the indigenous
foodways are maintained—at least for a while—though they’re
almost completely abandoned today.
169
Lecture 23: African and Aboriginal Cuisines

Before that point of contact, aboriginal cuisine relied exclusively on
indigenous plants and animals. There are a wide variety of tubers,
vegetables like bush tomatoes and finger limes, wattle seeds, fruits
like the quandong, bunya nuts, and macadamia nuts. Witchetty
grubs and honey ants, fish and eels in streams, kangaroos and
wallabies, emus, bandicoots, bush-tailed possum, goanna (lizards),
and snakes could all be hunted with spears or a boomerang.

Cooking methods are very simple. Cooking involves making a fire
and throwing in the meat or digging a hole, putting leaves over hot
coals, and wrapping foods in leaves or bark so they don’t burn.
Alternatively, a wooden trough can be filled with water, and hot
rocks can be thrown in to cook food. Resourcefulness is essential
because they didn’t have pottery or meat implements.

Practically none of Australian indigenous food is eaten anywhere,
even in Australia. Perhaps even more amazing is that an entire
cuisine could be transplanted in its entirety from England. That’s
not to say that Australian cooking hasn’t also been influenced by
Asian cooking or the immigration of Greeks, Syrians, Germans,
and other groups. Of course, there are many foods that have been
invented in the past two centuries.
Suggested Reading
Carney, In the Shadow of Slavery.
Harris, High on the Hog.
Opie, Hogs and Hominy.
Culinary Activity
Matooke and Luwombo
These two dishes are common in Uganda and go together so beautifully
that it is well worth trying. Matooke is simply a small starchy banana
that is steamed and mashed. You can substitute plantains, but a closer
approximation can be found in African or even Southeast Asian groceries.
170
For the luwombo, you will need to find banana leaves, which are sold frozen
in Asian groceries. They serve as the steaming container as well as the plate.
You can make this with any kind of meat, but goat is the richest. Cut up the
goat meat into large chunks, and season with salt and pepper. Crush a few
handfuls of peanuts into a fine powder, and toss with the meat. Sprinkle with
some chili flakes, some chopped onion, grated ginger, and a few chopped
tomatoes. Place two or three banana leaves facing different directions down
on the table, and put in a pile of the meat on top and then fold in the leaves
to enclose. Tie securely with string. Make several bundles, one for each
person. Then, make a fire, and surround with three bricks. Place a pot on
the bricks over the fire, add a little water, and put in the banana leaf bundles.
The wood fire and smoke really does make a difference to the flavor. Add
water as needed, making sure the bundles don’t burn. Steam for at least two
hours. Cut open the bundles from the top, folding down the leaves to create
a kind of plate, and eat directly from the leaf with some matooke on the side.
Naturally, you use your fingers, of the right hand only.
171
Edo, Japan—Samurai Dining and Zen Aesthetics
Lecture 24
J
Lecture 24: Edo, Japan—Samurai Dining and Zen Aesthetics
apan’s cuisine development does not have to do with exotic ingredients,
complicated procedures, or fantastically impossible presentations of
food. Instead, it is a refinement based on simplicity, austere aesthetic
presentation, freshness of ingredients, and minimal processing. In this
lecture, which focuses on traditional Japan in the Edo era, you will learn
about a cuisine that developed entirely in its own unique direction, cut off
from the process of globalization—not because of geographical isolation
but, rather, as a result of an intentional shutting out of the West.
Japanese Cuisine
 Many of Japan’s cultural and culinary traditions come from China
and Korea. Probably the most important of them is rice, which only
arrived in Japan at the end of the Neolithic period, about 2,400 years
ago, with immigrants from the mainland. Asiatic peoples came from
the continent with rice and metal tools, and the population suddenly
rose—just like elsewhere in Asia.
172

The variety of rice introduced was short-grained, sticky, and
relatively sweet. To this day, the Japanese don’t eat long-grain rice.
Much of their cuisine is based on the tactile quality of the rice they
use and the fact that it sticks together and that you can pick it up
with a chopstick. It is nearly impossible to eat long-grain loose rice
with chopsticks.

Their respect and reverence for rice is so great that it is never
flavored or seasoned with spices or sauces. It is always pure white
and boiled. Other foods can go on top of it, but the rice should be
pure and bland to start with.

One of the only preparations that alters rice dramatically is mochi,
which is little rice cakes made by pounding steamed glutinous
rice. Neither mochi nor sake are thought of as a corruption of

Rice is the indisputable central staple
of Japan. Rice is even made into
noodles, using a technology that
was introduced from China in the 8th
century. Only later were noodles made
from flour introduced, called udon,
which were popular in western Japan.
Ramen are a more recent invention.
Starch, usually rice or noodles, form
the substructure of Japanese cuisine.
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
rice, but raising it to a finer and more
spiritual level. Mochi is consumed
during the New Year period while
sake plays a very important role in
religious festivals.
Mochi is a Japanese rice
cake that is pounded into a
paste and then shaped.

In its long history, Japan has had many prohibitions on meat eating.
The first, from 675, prohibited eating cattle, horses, dogs, monkeys,
and chickens. The Japanese seem to have taken the Buddhist
prohibition against killing more seriously than any other Buddhist
peoples, especially in the 8th and 9th centuries, when eating any and
all mammals was forbidden. Occasionally, some people hunted
birds or game, but as a rule, animals were not raised for meat as
elsewhere in the world.

The Japanese ate lots of fish. Only strict Buddhist monks avoided
fish. Japan is surrounded by water, so the ideal was fish as fresh as
could be found. Raw fish in thin slices (namasu) has always been
eaten in Japan, but the practice of dipping sashimi in soy sauce
with wasabi only became popular in the 17th century. Soy sauce
sometimes masks the pure flavors, especially of more delicate fish.

Sushi, in its original form (nare-zushi), was very different from
what it is today. It started out as a way to preserve fish for several
years. A bite-sized piece would be salted and rolled in rice flavored
with vinegar and then left to cure. After it was preserved, the
173
Lecture 24: Edo, Japan—Samurai Dining and Zen Aesthetics
soured, decomposed rice would be wiped off, and the fish could be
eaten. In the 18th century, the hand-rolled nigirizushi was invented
and served at restaurants, basically as a kind of fast food.

In terms of vegetables, there are several different kinds of seaweed
that are eaten either as a side dish (hijiki) or as an ingredient in
dashi, which is basically a stock central to Japanese cooking. It’s
made with dried bonito shavings and kombu, which is a giant sea
kelp, and water. Seaweed is also used as a condiment. Daikon
radish is another popular vegetable in Japanese cuisine.

Soybeans are also central to Japanese cuisine. They are eaten lightly
boiled and cold (edamame); they are also made into tofu, which is
of great use to Buddhist monks. Soy is also made into miso paste,
which is a fermented and storable seasoning for boiled dishes and
soup. There are dozens of different types of miso, and the Japanese
appreciate the subtle differences the way Europeans obsess
over wine.

Shoyu, or soy sauce, is a relative newcomer to Japan. In the 16th
century, it began to be made on a commercial level. Today, soy
sauce is the most important seasoning. Another basic flavoring is
mirin, and all sorts of sauces are made with soy, vinegar, or citrus
(ponzu). Other important vegetables are gourds, which are dried
and cut into long strips, and mushrooms. Shiitake mushrooms are a
unique Japanese cultivar.
Japanese Table Manners
 The Japanese ate with their fingers before the 7th century. From
China, along with Buddhism, the chopstick was introduced. Food
is typically cut into mouth-sized bits, or sometimes larger; the
Japanese like to get an entire mouthful at a time. For some strange
reason, spoons did not catch on, and the Japanese usually sipped
directly from the bowl, which forces you to concentrate on the
contents. It’s a much more focused activity than slurping liquid off
of a spoon.
174

Every individual has his or her own set of chopsticks, and separate
ones are used for serving. The same focus on manners and etiquette
developed here at roughly the same time, if not earlier, than it
did in the West, but obviously with very different results. There
is a similar avoidance of polluting common serving dishes with
one’s saliva, having to do with ideas of pollution and cleanliness
in Shintoism.

The other unique feature is that the Japanese used no chairs.
They sat directly on a tatami mat or on the wooden floor, and like
drinking out of a bowl, it forces the person to do everything slowly
and more methodically. They usually bring the bowl close to their
lips and move the food with the chopsticks. Food is set on little
wooden tables, and typically everything is brought out at once.

Very formalized and ritualized manners developed in the 16th and
17th centuries among the samurai class, and for probably the very
same reasons, they developed among nobles in the West—at exactly
the same time. This type of manners prevents misunderstandings
and possible violent outbursts. Everyone is armed, but at the table,
there’s a ritualized truce.

Probably the most ritualized ceremony involves taking tea (cha
dou). Tea itself came with Buddhists from China, but for some
reason, it fell from favor and became popular again in the Middle
Ages. The ceremony was developed in the 16th century and was
meant to reflect Zen philosophy in that it sought to create an entire
aesthetic experience of art, architecture, gardening, crafts, and food.
There is a formal feast that goes with the ceremony, called kaisekiryori, with very strict order of courses.
The Presentation of Food
 Although they ruled politically, the mercantile class is economically
the important class in this period. These people had money, ate
out often, and lived in cities, such as Edo, Osaka, and Kyoto.
They invented Japanese haute cuisine, which is the basis of most
traditional Japanese cooking today. It is these restaurants in the Edo
175
Lecture 24: Edo, Japan—Samurai Dining and Zen Aesthetics
period that placed so much emphasis on presentation and on the
philosophy that stresses the natural, unaffected, and haphazard.
176

Japanese cuisine is also probably the cuisine that pays more
attention to the size, shape, and color of the bowls food is served on.
In Japanese cuisine, the bowls or serving containers are chosen very
carefully to heighten the tactile and sensory quality of the food, and
it’s perfectly fine for them to be different shapes and sizes—unlike
in Western culture. In addition, handmade objects are revered.

Food is meticulously arranged on a plate to heighten attention to
the different senses. Visual appeal is perhaps more important than
in any other cuisine. There is careful attention to the color, but also
to the shape of the food and how it sits on the plate. There is careful
attention to the overall design, but also to the texture of the food in
your mouth and to the aroma as it enters your nostrils.

Unlike Western cuisines—or even other Asian ones—the Japanese
seem to appreciate single ingredients on their own rather than
complex combinations of flavor and texture. There is something
very minimalistic about this mindset, which is why this cooking
(and art, for that matter) has been appealing to Westerners.

Cooking techniques are also very simple. If cooked at all, food is
cooked for a precise length of time and usually over a stove top.
There’s very little baking or roasting. In addition, food is cut in
small pieces so that it cooks quicker and more evenly and so that
you never need a sharp object at the table. Almost all foods are
either fried, grilled, or steamed.

Bento boxes are the quintessential Japanese food. It’s a whole
elegant, miniature lunch in a box. Rice is the core but the box also
contains grilled fish, shrimp, little pickles, and cold salads of gobo
root arranged on little shiso leaves. The box also contains fruit.
Every item is presented artfully in its own little compartment so
that the foods don’t get mixed up. It’s meant to be eaten on the go.
Suggested Reading
Cwiertka, Modern Japanese Cuisine.
Ishige, History and Culture of Japanese Food.
Rath, Food and Fantasy in Early Modern Japan.
Culinary Activity
Tasting Experiment
A traditional Edo-era restaurant was designed to stimulate all of the senses,
evoke memories, and capture the essence of certain seasons. It essentially
treated the gastronomic experience like poetry. The next time you order
Japanese food to bring home—or, better yet, make yourself—think carefully
about the entire setting. That is, choose traditional music that fits the cuisine
(perhaps shakuhachi flute music or the shamisen). Put up images that are
evocative, and carefully arrange plants or fragrant flowers. Use tableware
that will demand careful consideration, such as bowls you can sip from and
Japanese chopsticks. If you have reed mats, eat sitting on the floor with the
food on a low table. Think about how the setting changed your awareness
of the food. Did you eat more slowly? Did you taste flavors and notice
textures that normally would have been lost? Consider what would happen
gastronomically if we paid this much attention to the setting in all of our
meals. Would we become more mindful of food in general?
177
Colonial Cookery in North America
Lecture 25
P
Lecture 25: Colonial Cookery in North America
eople often tend to think of colonial America as relatively homogenous,
or they think that all the English settlers were basically the same
culturally, ethnically, and socially. However, apart from the major
economic differences between the North and South, practically every colony
was founded for different reasons, and different kinds of people settled them.
Each group, in one way or another, influenced American eating habits down
the road. In this lecture, you will learn how the 13 original colonies that were
established on the east coast of North America in the 18th century developed,
interacted, and invented their own unique culinary traditions.
Virginia
 After several failed attempts, the first colony to succeed in North
America was founded in Jamestown, Virginia, in 1607. The settlers
of Virginia were by and large wealthy gentry and lesser nobility who
intended to live as they had in England—if not better. They tried to
eat the same way, and they printed the exact same cookbooks that
were being printed in England, those that were written for landed
gentry women managing country estates.
178

At the social level, Virginia is the place that most closely replicates
the English country aristocracy and its way of life, but there are
several important differences. Instead of living off the proceeds of
renting tenants, the lord of the manor (in everything but title) lived
off the labor of slaves. These were mostly plantations producing
major crops or textile plants for export. The African slaves brought
in and sold to these plantation owners also brought their own food
traditions, including okra, black-eyed peas, and also certain African
cooking techniques.

The other ethnic group that influenced this colony was the Native
Americans. When the English arrived, they were settled and
practiced extensive agriculture, hunting, and fishing. The Native
Americans introduced the English to corn, tomatoes, and pumpkins.
Unlike their English cousins, the Virginia settlers adopted these
foods immediately. In the long run, most of the natives disappeared,
were pushed out, or died of disease, but their crops were
enthusiastically adopted and became staples among the colonists.

The other factor affecting Virginian cooking is that there was a
large number of poorer Englishmen—or sometimes Scots or ScotsIrish—who came to Virginia either as indentured servants or to start
small subsistence farms or to work in cities. Necessity forced these
people to make use of anything they could grow, and it seems like
they were the first people to meld all of the disparate traditions,
which eventually become standard among all levels of society.

The most prevalent meat eaten in the south is not beef or lamb
or any kind of expensive meat eaten fresh—it’s pork. This has
something to do with the abundance of corn used as feed for hogs.
Rice also becomes very important to the South in general because
it grows well in the marshy Carolinas. The English settlers had no
idea how to grow it, but the African slaves did (and had been doing
so for centuries).

Virginia is part of a large empire that by the 18th century includes
footholds in India, the Caribbean, and the Mediterranean. The
English own Gibraltar and control much of the trade, so we find
lemons, anchovies, and currants in Virginia, pineapples and allspice
from Jamaica, sugarloaves from Barbados, pepper and cinnamon
from Ceylon, and ketchup from Indonesia.

The combination of all these disparate ingredients with some
very sturdy English foods—including smoked hams and bacon,
chickens, beef and mutton—becomes matter of course, as it still is
in this country. There are also native ingredients, including oysters,
crabs, fish, deer, rabbit, beaver, ducks, geese, and turkeys. Virginian
cuisine becomes as complex and rich as English cuisine and uses
many of the same imports, but they put them together in very
unique ways, given the odd mix of peoples.
179
Lecture 25: Colonial Cookery in North America

What these people drank is equally as interesting. They drank
wine if they could afford to import it. They drank port and sherry
especially after the English placed trade restrictions on French wine
and lowered taxes on Spanish and Portuguese wines. Beer was
made, but it spoiled very easily in the summer heat, and the yeast
died in the cold winters, so it wasn’t the most popular drink.

Vast quantities of rum were imported from the Caribbean, and it
was put into all sorts of bizarre punch and toddy concoctions. There
was also a unique American invention, sour mash whiskey, which
is distilled from corn. Today, the best sour mash whiskey is called
bourbon from Kentucky. They also distilled whiskey from rye,
and as you move northward into the mid-Atlantic states, distilled
apple cider, or applejack, was the drink of choice—but it was also
distilled in the South. The reason hard alcohol caught on to such
an extent has to do with transport; it was easier to carry into the
hinterland than beer or wine and into stores much more easily.
New England
 Virginia kept in close economic and intellectual contact with
England, and the wealthiest plantation owners threw elaborate
feasts on the same scale as their European counterparts. Pretty much
the opposite is the case with New England. The people who came
were socially very different; they were to a large extent middleclass mercantile-oriented people from East Anglia. They were also
highly literate and had a long tradition of religious nonconformity.
In other words, they didn’t suddenly become Puritans overnight.

180
There were some noblemen among the New Englanders, but in
general, nearly everyone engaged in commerce, trade, farming,
or fishing to supply the market. What that means is the wealth is
distributed much more evenly among New Englanders. Their tastes
are comparatively simple and austere, given their Puritan heritage,
but they nonetheless grow very wealthy. New Englanders also tend
to be very reserved and take themselves very seriously.
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
Clam chowder, a hearty soup, is a specialty of New England.

New Englanders were extremely prolific—which is what happens
with abundant natural resources, hard-working people, and lots
of land—but it’s still not very crowded, so there aren’t major
epidemics like in Europe. Longer life spans and lower infant
mortality rates cause the population to boom. Most people lived on
small farms, so there were no real extremes of wealth.

Their food was very simple and based for the most part on local
ingredients. There was a cornmeal bread called johnnycake or
hoecake. Codfish went into chowders, along with clams. Lobsters
were so plentiful that they were considered a poor man’s food.
Meats like beef or mutton tended to be boiled or made into a Yankee
pot roast. There was also substantial dairying, especially to make
butter and cheese. Baked pumpkins and apples and a whole slew
of vegetables could be stored in a root cellar. New Englanders were
also inordinately fond of pies.
181
Lecture 25: Colonial Cookery in North America

New England simplicity changed into the mid-18th century for a few
reasons. First, the region became a major mercantile hub, a large
shipbuilding industry, and a large rum-distilling industry connected
them to the triangular trade route, linking them to Africa and the
Caribbean. Foods from all over the empire—including tea, coffee,
and spices—passed through New England ports. Some people
grew very wealthy, but their eating habits didn’t seem to change
that much, except that they became much more closely connected
culturally to England.
The Mid-Atlantic Region
 It’s difficult to generalize about the mid-Atlantic region because
there are several different colonies that were founded for different
reasons. The Dutch in New Amsterdam and up the Hudson
Valley essentially transplanted Dutch culture and large estates
(patroonships) into the New World. They set up what are basically
feudal estates and rented out the land in parcels to tenants—a
practice that is relatively rare in the Netherlands, where most
farmers own their own land that is intensively cultivated or used for
dairy. Perhaps the investors saw this as a way to attract settlers and
make a lot of money.
182

The Dutch handed over New Netherlands to the English in 1667
after a mercantile war, but the Dutch settlers remained, even though
the colony became New York and East Jersey. Many Dutch cooking
traditions remained, including waffles and cookies.

In the southern part of New Jersey—and, more importantly,
into Pennsylvania—there settled an entirely different group of
Englishmen: the Quakers, who are not only radical Protestants, but
also pacifists. These people were also religious exiles and were lead
by William Penn. Incidentally, they’re a lot like the Anabaptists,
who were invited to join them in the 18th century, so there’s this
massive influx of Mennonites and Amish from Germany.

In terms of foodways, the Quakers don’t seem to be that different
from other English settlers—except that they often wouldn’t eat
sugar because it was made by slaves, and they tended to avoid
spices because they felt it adulterated foods and was an unnecessary
ornament. They also wear plain black clothes and broad-brimmed
hats. They have very simple tastes.

The German settlers, on the other hand, introduced things like
sauerkraut, dill pickles, and German sausages. They also introduced
pretzels, which are very different from English baked goods
because they’re boiled first and then baked. They also introduced
cast-iron stoves, which Ben Franklin adapted and improved, and
cast-iron pots with lids, which are called Dutch ovens.

Pennsylvania also became cosmopolitan because they were one of
the few colonies to allow religious freedom, so Jews, free Africans,
and Swedes settled there. By the 18th century, it was also the
second largest English-speaking city in the world, so it wasn’t a
coincidence that it was chosen as the first capital.
Suggested Reading
Carney, Black Rice.
Eden, Early American Table.
Haber, Hardtack to Homefries.
Levenstein, Revolution at Table.
Oliver, Food in Colonial and Federal America.
Randolf, Virginia Housewife.
Simmons, American Cookery.
Culinary Activity
Although English cookbooks had been printed in the colonies in the 18th
century, the first truly American cookbook, using native ingredients, was
Amelia Simmons’s American Cookery, published in Hartford in 1796. She
offers three different versions of the following recipe, which by this time
183
was very popular in New England but today is a real rarity. It is worth
reviving, and each version is quite different. The last technique is by far
the best and offers a simple but deep and utterly delicious flavor. As she
suggests, any kind of vessel will work, as long as it is sealed tight and can be
boiled. Boiling puddings in a buttered cloth tied tightly with string were also
common, but they are now completely extinct in the United States. It was the
original way of making “peas porridge” as well. Do account for expansion of
the cornmeal, whatever vessel you use.
A Nice Indian Pudding
No. 1. 3 pints scalded milk, 7 spoons fine Indian meal, stir well together
while hot, let stand till cooled; add 7 eggs, half pound of raisins, 4 ounces
butter, spice and sugar, bake one and half hour.
Lecture 25: Colonial Cookery in North America
No. 2. 3 pints scalded milk to one pint meal salted cook, add 2 eggs, 4
ounces butter, sugar or molasses and spice q. s. it will require two and half
hours baking.
No. 3. Salt a pint meal, wet with one quart milk, sweeten and put into a
strong cloth, brass or bell metal vessel, stone or earthen pot, secure from wet
and boil 12 hours.
184
Eating in the Early Industrial Revolution
Lecture 26
T
his lecture begins by focusing on Britain in the late 18th and early 19th
centuries and a series of events that marks what most food historians
contend is the second major revolution in human eating habits in
the history of our species. The first occurred about 10,000 years ago with
the Neolithic Revolution, a time when humans went from being hunters
and gatherers to farmers. The second revolution involves a switch from the
vast majority of people growing food for a living to most people working
in factories and having food provided by a small number of industrially
organized and financed food producers.
The Rise of Food Manufacturing
 In the late 18th and early 19th centuries, food production becomes a
business separate from most people’s daily lives. This is a process
that takes a good century to develop and takes even longer to
spread around the world, but it begins in Great Britain with two
interconnected world-changing events: a second agricultural
revolution and the Industrial Revolution.

In the midst of these events was an individual named Adam Smith—
probably among the most influential thinkers of all time—who
heralded the modern era in many ways. Smith’s Wealth of Nations,
published in 1776, predicted the way the economy would work in
the age of capitalism. He predicted a new form of organization for
labor. From day to day, the average worker or farmer constantly
switches jobs, which means that he or she never really gets efficient
at any of them.

Smith suggested that if each stage of a process could be handled
by separate people that specialized in their particular task, then
they could be more efficient and make more products. He called it
division of labor, and the key to it is mass manufacture rather than
small-scale cottage crafts.
185
Lecture 26: Eating in the Early Industrial Revolution
186

Smith also wondered what would happen if all the ways governments
control the economy—by import duties, monopolies, fixing prices
and wages, and all the things mercantilist theorists said should be
done—were taken away. With a total laissez-faire economy, he
predicted that everyone would get wealthier and that the wealth of
the nation as a whole would be greater because businesses would be
freely competing, and only the best would survive.

Why Smith’s predictions could even be conceivable has to do with
changes in the organization of agriculture first. The techniques
were actually not entirely new, but the British applied them on a
massive scale—so great that it actually changes the shape of their
society entirely.

The new capitalist farmer did a few important things. New threefield crop rotation systems were introduced, which meant that land
never had to stay fallow. New crops were put in one cycle—usually
clover or alfalfa, which could be eaten by cattle—if the farmer had
a large herd.

There was also a massive effort made at selective breeding.
Improving plant varieties causes them to yield more grains per
plant, and this is partly possible with more manure from bigger
herds as well as improved cattle breeding. They don’t have genetics
yet, but choosing animals and plants with certain characteristics to
breed over several generations makes them little food factories.

There are also the first agricultural machines. The most famous of
them is Jethro Tull’s seed drill, which plants neat, even rows rather
than broadcast seeds. These inventions result in much more food
at cheaper prices. Your average small farmer has disappeared in
favor of large capital-intensive farms. As a result, Britain is the first
place to completely eradicate subsistence crises, famines, and even
minor setbacks in food production—leading to a major population
explosion that doesn’t begin to halt until the late 20th century.

Britain has an excess of labor, which drives the cost of labor
way down, leading to lots of people looking for jobs and having
to settle for dirt wages. This teeming mass of cheap labor means
that manufacturing—which was formerly done on a small scale,
producing mostly luxury goods—begins to produce cheaper goods
on a much larger scale that are marketed to anyone who can afford
them. The general trend from the early 19th century to the present
is mass production, standardization, and craftsmen and farmers
changing into wage-paid workers.

The most important early new source of energy is James Watt’s
steam engine. This new technology is not only important in stepping
up production and making factories themselves possible, but also
the existence of steamships and railroads means that goods can be
moved faster, farther, and cheaper to more customers.
Society and the Industrial Revolution
 Society changed in a major way as a result of the Industrial
Revolution. Workers no longer made their own food and household
items for their own consumption, and they didn’t even buy them
from the local craftsman anymore. In the industrial age, the
manufacturer basically has to guess what the consumer wants or
spend a fortune convincing the consumer that he or she wants it,
even though it may not be in the consumer’s best interest to buy it.

Other negative effects of the Industrial Revolution include the iron
smelting and slag heaps that are waste products and the pollution
from burning coal. In fact, many environmental historians contend
that since the 18th century, we have entered into a new geological
epoch called the Anthropocene, in which humans have an
unavoidably large effect on the environment.

The industrial revolution produced enormous amounts of wealth
for the privileged bourgeoisie, but the workers never felt like the
product was theirs or that they had a stake in it or pride that it was
being used by someone they knew. The industrial process takes all
of the pride and creativity out of making things, and that capacity
187
to enjoy working and become satisfied with our accomplishments is
uniquely human.

In the industrial era, a new flour-milling technique was developed
that could squash the grains under intense pressure between two
metal rollers. The flour got heated up a bit, and some nutrients were
lost, but it became cheaper.

In most people’s minds, whiter meant better, and it had always been
only the wealthy who could afford pure white bread. The incentive
to produce more bread quicker meant that manufacturers had great
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
Lecture 26: Eating in the Early Industrial Revolution
The Importance of Bread and Potatoes
 Bread was a gritty affair made with stone-ground flour. Yeasts were
unpredictable and often sour, and wood-burning ovens made odd,
misshapen loaves sometimes with crusty, dark exteriors. Bread
went stale after a day or two. Maybe most importantly, it differed
from place to place and even from one baker to another.
Bread is one of the most basic foods in many different cultures.
188
incentive to use the flour quickly rather than let it mature, which
gives it better flavor and lift in baking.

Bread manufacturers were in a hurry, so they began to search for
artificial ways to make bread lighter and fluffier with chemicals.
A variety of them were used, but what they eventually settled on
was bleaching the flour with bromates, which makes it whiter (and
destroys vitamin E), and conditioners so it will stay bouncier and
last on the shelf longer. In the 20th century, white breads have to
have vitamins and minerals added back in—in an attempt to make
up for what’s been removed.

Nevertheless, the industrialization of bread making continued
apace, along with new chemical leavening agents. The very first
United States patent went to Samuel Hopkins in 1790 for potash,
which is used as a fertilizer and chemical leavener in quick breads
(like biscuits) and is an ancestor of baking powder.

In 1835, the English also began selling chemicals for use in baking.
The result was that home baking tended to concentrate more on
quick muffins, scones, and pancakes. This in itself is not such a bad
thing, but the chemicals might be, and it’s bad if you end up living
on such things.

The diet of the average British family dramatically declined in terms
of overall calories, percentage of protein, and most dramatically,
reduction of vitamins due to lack of fresh vegetables. Living on
bread, potatoes, scraps of bacon, and sweetened tea just doesn’t offer
a decent diet. The result was severe outbreaks of scurvy, a vitamin C
deficiency, and widespread rickets, which is a vitamin D deficiency.

In the 1830s, potatoes were considerably cheaper than bread, so they
increasingly became the more economical option, with any leftover
money spent on tea and sugar. Potatoes are good for you, except
with the increased demand and planting nothing but potatoes—
especially in places like Ireland—disaster was bound to strike, and
it did, beginning in 1845 and lasting in Ireland until 1852.
189
Lecture 26: Eating in the Early Industrial Revolution

Absolute disaster and deadly famine struck when the potato blight
hit. About one million Irish died, and about the same number
emigrated to America and England. The British government at
first tried to help them with shipment of cornmeal, but a change in
government a year later that brought in politicians who favored free
trade thought it would hurt growers if food was just sent to people
for nothing. The British government pretty much let the Irish perish
as a necessary casualty of the market. Conversely, food exports
from Ireland did not stop, even at the height of the famine.

The only people who apparently wanted to help were Quakers
and relief societies, who cared more about human beings than the
market. There was only so much they could do, but they did force
on the government what was called the Soup Kitchen Act in 1847
that provided some food in cities. However, in the end, about onefifth of the population was gone. This is a great example of how
a single food can completely change the course of history. Ireland
would be a different place thereafter.
Suggested Reading
Atkins, Food and the City in Europe Since 1800.
Beeton, Mrs. Beeton’s Book of Household Management.
Burnett, Plenty and Want.
Clarkson, Feast and Famine.
Drummond, Englishman’s Food.
Fisher, American Cookbook.
Floyd, Recipe Reader.
Francatelli, Plain Cookery.
Gentilcore, Pomodoro.
Griffith, Born Again Bodies.
Harrison, Drink and the Victorians.
190
Humble, Culinary Pleasures.
Reader, Potato.
Salaman, History and Social Influence of the Potato.
Smith, Eating History.
Soyer, A Shilling Cookery.
Zuckerman, Potato.
Culinary Activity
Simple Industrial-Age Dinner
Contrary to the image we have of the wealthy in the mid-19th century being
completely uncaring toward the poor, starving working classes, a number
of people took up charitable causes, including Alexis Soyer and a chef who
worked for Queen Victoria named Charles Elmé Francatelli, whose A Plain
Cookery Book for the Working Classes was designed to offer cheap and
nutritious meals. Equally interesting is his assumption that this generation of
working women had no idea how to cook very basic food. Presumably working
in factories since a young age, they never had the opportunity to learn basic
skills. This is a very typical British dish and a technique very different from
that common in the United States when dealing with bacon. For this recipe,
you should use a whole slab of cured, smoked pork belly, not sliced American
bacon or cut English rashers. It is, incidentally, as Francatelli claims, excellent.
Boiled Bacon and Cabbages
Put a piece of bacon in a pot capable of containing two gallons; let it boil
up, and skim it well; then put in some well-washed split cabbages, a few
carrots and parsnips also split, and a few peppercorns, and when the whole
has boiled gently for about an hour and a-half, throw in a dozen peeled
potatoes, and by the time that these are done, the dinner will be ready. And
this is the way in which to make the most of this excellent and economical
dinner. First, take up the bacon, and having placed it on its dish, garnish
it round with the cabbages, carrots, parsnips, and potatoes, and then add
some pieces of crust, or thin slices of bread, to the liquor in which the bacondinner has been cooked, and this will furnish you with a good wholesome
soup with which to satisfy the first peremptory call of your healthy appetites.
191
Romantics, Vegetarians, Utopians
Lecture 27
N
Lecture 27: Romantics, Vegetarians, Utopians
ot everyone was happy with the new situation of industrialized
food production, and in this lecture, you will learn about the first
counterculture food movements and the reaction that some people—
including Romantics, vegetarians, health gurus, and utopians—had against
progress. These people are vaguely recognized as the ancestors of the modern
health-food movement. They represent a real 19th-century counterculture
food movement, and like the modern movement, they are also subsumed by
the food industry. In other words, they sell out and go mainstream.
Counterculture Food Movements
 There are a number of preconditions to the first counterculture
food movements. One important factor is the almost complete
breakdown of the basic humoral principles of nutrition in the 18th
century. It began to be replaced or amended during the scientific
revolution, when new chemical ways of thinking about digestion
and new mechanical investigations in physiology made the whole
Galenic system obsolete.
192

Without a uniform dietary theory that all physicians subscribe to,
there were dozens of different competing theories floating around
in the 18th century, each with their own bizarre conceptions of what
people need to eat to stay healthy. Some said eat meat and drink
wine; others said eat vegetables and avoid wine.

In the midst of this wild speculation, there appear the first
scientifically defended vegetarian diets. With this wild speculation
in dietetics, and without any one solid set of empirical facts that
everyone could agree on, there was rampant quackery. Almost
anything that sounded remotely scientific could pass. Directly
connected to this are diets that were both scientific and religious.

The counterculture diets of the 19th century, like those of the
previous century, tended to appeal to wealthy, overweight, middleand upper-class women, who mostly wanted to eat a simple diet as a
way to lose weight and become spiritually purified. That’s actually
true of most food ideologies: They promise that if you eat a certain
way, you will be healthy, moral, politically correct, a better person.
They’re a lot like religions in that way; they require a conversion
and complete commitment.

The 18th-century weight-loss, spiritual-renewal diets have a direct
impact on the 19th-century health-food movements because they see
industrial society not only as unhealthy, but also as morally corrupt.
Another thing often connected with these is temperance. Alcohol
became very inexpensive and, therefore, became the preferred drink
among many poor people. Food reformers often mixed teetotaling
with a simpler, more natural diet with spiritual revivalism.
The Romantic Movement
 The roots of the Romantic movement, which began with a
philosopher by the name of Jean-Jacques Rousseau, are in the 18th
century as well. Among all of his contemporaries, including French
and English philosophers, there was an intense faith in progress—
one of scientific advancement and economic improvement.

Rousseau can be indirectly credited with devising an entirely new
attitude toward food that had long-lasting consequences up to the
present. Rousseau’s brand of nature worship inverted the traditional
value placed on manmade and improved products of nature, giving
a negative spin on the term “artificial.”

Indirectly, Rousseau spawned what we now know as the health-food
movement. Simpler, unprocessed, unrefined foods were considered
preferable. Rousseau thought that most people ate deplorable
things, including sugar, pastries, and junk food. Rousseau also has a
decided leaning toward vegetable foods, believing that eating meat
makes humans more cruel and ferocious. Rousseau’s ideas were
especially influential on Romantics of the 19th century.
193
Lecture 27: Romantics, Vegetarians, Utopians

The Vegetarian Society was officially founded in 1847, which is
when the word “vegetarian” was coined. Vegetarians at this time
supported their position with the latest scientific findings and with
religion. Justus von Liebig—probably the first person we could call
a nutritional scientist in the modern sense of the term—discovered
through his research that animal protein is not fundamentally
different from vegetable. (In fact, animal proteins have the complete
range of amino acids, and plants don’t.)

They also had support from a Swedish Christian philosopher and
mystic Emmanuel Swedenborg, who among his pantheistic ideas
believed that meat eating is the most visible symbol of our corruption
and fall from grace and is the source of evil in the world. Giving up
these foods, and alcohol, was a kind of gradual spiritual cleansing.
Utopian Socialism
 Mixed into this bizarre melee of ideas was another strand of thought
that is usually called utopian socialism. Food reform had always
been a major part of utopian thought. The utopians ate communally,
consuming simply prepared, nutritious meals. They all took twoyear turns at farming. They did eat meat, but they made criminals
butcher any meat. More believed that getting used to killing
animals would desensitize a person to killing in general, so only the
degenerate people do it.
194

In the 19th century, utopian socialists tried to create real societies
based on utopian principles. There were real utopian experiments.
They set up communes in which all of the inhabitants would have
the same amount of wealth, would live communally, and share all
tasks equally.

Robert Owen built a small community called New Lanarck, which
was basically a textile mill—except that it was set in a beautiful, rural
place and kept meticulously clean. The workers in the factories had
control over how much and what they made. Owen’s assumption was
that if you put people in decent surroundings and treat them well,
they would work hard, succeed, and turn out to be good people.
Owen’s community was also supposed to be self-sufficient, so they
grew their own food and in his original plans it was to be vegetarian.
His food reform ideas influenced a whole generation of people who
thought that the only way to improve society is to escape. Instead,
change the nature of work, destroy the inequality between humans,
and stop the oppression of animals.

There were a slew of utopian socialist experiments in the mid-19th
century. What all of these experiments had in common is that they
gave up private property and lived and ate communally. They grew
their own food and were often so industrious that they could sell
much of their produce or the things they made.

Some of these groups were also explicitly or quasi-religious in
nature. For example, the Shakers lived in these communes starting
in upstate New York and New England, but they spread throughout
the Ohio valley and south into Kentucky. By the mid-19th century,
there were about 5,000 members in a dozen communities. The only
reason these communities were bound to disappear eventually is
that they were also celibate.

All of these movements are a
reaction against the mainstream
food culture—as well as its ideology
of oppression and inequality. Their
diet is just one facet of a much larger
set of ideas for reform, and their
emphasis on purity of food is in part
directly stimulated by reports about
all of the food adulteration. Many of
these groups gave up coffee and tea
because of the oppression involved
in growing them. Many also began
to eat more raw foods that were less
processed as a conscious reaction
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.

Vegetables can have healing
effects on the body.
195
Lecture 27: Romantics, Vegetarians, Utopians
against mass-manufactured food that they believed harms your
body and costs more.
196

Vegetarianism began to spread, along with the idea that dramatically
restricting your diet could improve your health, cleanse your
system, and cure all sorts of new and fashionable diseases that were
brought on by, ironically, eating too much.

This first antimodern society health-food movement began to
appeal to wealthy women and men as a kind of curative regimen
to counteract the rich and heavily meat-and-alcohol-laden diet that
they normally enjoyed. In other words, they would take vacations to
elite spas, eat vegetables and drink mineral water for a few weeks,
and get enemas and massages.

Perhaps the most famous, or infamous, of these religiously inspired
food-reform leaders was Dr. John Harvey Kellogg, whose sanitarium
in Battle Creek, Michigan, offered curative retreats for sick and
stressed Seventh-day Adventists. Kellogg was up on the latest
science, and it was just at this time that people were beginning to
understand the role of intestinal flora in digestion. There are actually
bacteria in your gut that help you digest food. You can kill them
accidentally (with strong antibiotics), but you can also promote them
with foods like yogurt with live lactobacillus cultures.

Kellogg said that people eat too much meat and not enough
vegetables, which have roughage and promote intestinal flora. He
had visitors to the sanitarium eat very plain vegetables and no spices,
alcohol, or stimulants. They were usually patients suffering from
stress-related disorders, and the assumption was that all of these food
tightened the body and increased stress while plain food relaxed the
sinews. In 1877, he came up with a cereal he called granula, but he
was sued and was forced to change the name to granola.

Kellogg’s brother Will Keith marketed granola and another product
he had developed, called cornflakes, in neat packages, advertised
them well, and basically sold them to the entire nation. What
began as a wacko religious-scientific health-food cure—because of
keen business sense and the fact that they are very convenient—
completely changed what Americans eat for breakfast.

Kellogg only had one serious competitor in those days: another
quack running a sanitarium, Charles W. Post, who invented a cereal
called grape nuts, which was advertised as steadying the nerves and
making the blood red. Apparently because the barley malt used in it
converts the starch into glucose—or grape sugar as they then called
it—he settled on the name.

In the end, of all strange ironies, health foods were subsumed
as industrial foods, mass produced, and marketed widely. They
became the very things they were designed to combat.
Suggested Reading
Guerrini, Obesity and Depression.
Preece, Sins of the Flesh.
Spenser, The Heretics Feast.
Stuart, Bloodless Revolution.
Culinary Activity
The idea of what constitutes a natural diet changes from era to era. For some,
it might be a vegetarian meal or foods that are unprocessed; for others, it
could be raw food or paleo food. Every era constructs what is “natural”
based on its own preoccupations and anxieties. All make the claim that one
will feel better immediately. Put this claim to the test with the following
experiment. In academic circles, this is called an autoethnography. Choose a
modern diet that claims to be natural. Follow it strictly for three days, or for
a whole week if you have the patience. Record all of your experiences. Have
you noticed any changes in your body—with your digestion, energy level, or
sleep patterns? Did you learn anything about yourself and your regular diet
in the course of this experiment? Do you think that the experiment might
197
Lecture 27: Romantics, Vegetarians, Utopians
change the way you eat on some level? Most importantly, how did others
react to your diet? Did friends and family members help to accommodate
you? Did you have trouble eating out? Consider the experience of others
who diet or have restricted diets for medical reasons or allergies, or even
religious prohibition. Do you think this affects the way they negotiate social
relations? What have you learned about people with dietary restrictions
in general?
198
First Restaurants, Chefs, and Gastronomy
Lecture 28
I
n this lecture, you will learn about another important set of revolutions
in consumption that are contemporaneous to those of the Romantic
movement. You will learn about what became of French courtly haute
cuisine in the 19th century, focusing on a few interconnected developments:
the development of the restaurant, celebrity chefs, and gastronomy. As you
will learn, in the 19th century, there is a burgeoning food industry—along
with a series of food critics—plus a new way of dining in style.
The Development of the Restaurant
 In the late 18th century, there were professional chefs who cooked
for wealthy aristocrats all across Europe. In order to get such a
job, you had to train in an aristocratic kitchen. There were also
taverns and inns that mostly served travelers or people who didn’t
have cooking facilities. There were also professional caterers who
cooked for parties and weddings.

There really was no such thing as a restaurant, in which you could
sit down, choose from a menu with specified prices, and receive a
meal composed of several courses that were cooked to order. There
was also really no such thing as formal training for a chef, apart
from apprenticing with another chef and working your way up the
ranks within the kitchen hierarchy.

True restaurants that accepted customers as they arrived, seated
them at a private table, and offered a wide choice of cooked dishes
at fixed prices only appeared in the mid-18th century. The very first
was opened by a tavern keeper named Boulanger in 1765 at his
Champ d’Oiseau Tavern in Paris and served various soups meant to
be “restorative,” which is the origin of the term “restaurant.”

In 1782, the first true restaurant, La Grande Taverne de Londres,
was opened by Antoine Beauvilliers and served a wide variety
199
Lecture 28: First Restaurants, Chefs, and Gastronomy
of dishes, especially exotic dishes. Their specialty was still the
restorative medicinal soup, but they also had impeccably dressed
waiters and a wine cellar. Beauvilliers charged a fortune at his
restaurant, and he set the tone for restaurants to come.
200

In 1789, at the time of the French Revolution, scores of aristocrats
fled the nation or had their heads removed with a guillotine,
including King Louis XVI and Marie Antoinette. Suddenly, all of
the professional chefs working for aristocrats were out of work.
While this is not the origin of the restaurant, it certainly added to
the number of restaurants.

The French Revolution abolished the guild system, meaning that
anyone could practice in any trade he or she wanted—which is very
nearly free trade. People could now open an establishment serving
whatever they wanted to whomever they wanted, and that’s exactly
what chefs did.

In the very late 18th century and early 19th century, the restaurant as
we know it was invented in Paris. Why the restaurants succeeded
has a lot to do with the affluent bourgeois class, the people who
now have political enfranchisement and are doing very well in
business. These factory owners, merchants, and bankers suddenly
have a lot of money to spend. They are the perfect customers for
this new establishment because they’re busy, and just as in Japan a
century or so earlier, there’s a thriving, inventive restaurant culture
that springs up to serve them.

These establishments also serve food in distinct courses. Traditional
aristocratic dining (called service à la Française), which involved
bringing everything out at once, isn’t really possible in a restaurant,
where people come in and are seated at different times and order
different things. Instead, the pattern of service that emerges (called
service à la Russe) is that the variety of dishes comes out in a
strict order.

In the full version of service à la Russe, there are supposed to be
15 courses. The important thing about the order of courses is that
it’s ritualized. What we saw at first only at the courts of powerful
people has now descended to ordinary people, along with manners.

Another thing that changes, although very gradually through the
early modern period and into the 19th century, is meal times. In the
16th century, there were two standard meals: dinner at around 11 in
the morning and then supper, the smaller meal (usually of soup), at
5 or 6. Some people ate a small breakfast first thing in the morning,
and late at night, some ate a small snack called a collation, but two
meals were fairly standard.

By the time we get to the 19th century, meal patterns begin to
change, but only among the wealthy. Poor people, factory workers,
and people in the north of England hold onto the older patterns
well into the late 20th century. Among the wealthy and especially
in cities, the meal pattern began to have dinner pushed later and
later—finally to around 6 or 7, where it is today.

Between the two main meals fell two other new meals: nuncheon
(at noon), or luncheon, a small social gathering that involved
sharing a small meal; and then tea around 4 or 5 in the evening,
which was involved tea, sandwiches, and pastries. The three-meal
pattern we are familiar with only developed in the 19th century; the
only major difference is that in the United States, we’ve done away
with tea as a meal.
Celebrity Chefs
 Working within these new restaurants and for noble or royal
patrons were also what we might call the first celebrity chefs, men
who considered their work to be an art, were paid very well, and
attracted numerous customers for their establishments. Most of
them also wrote cookbooks.

The restaurants were huge, ornate structures with paintings on
the walls, chandeliers, elegant furniture, and linens. Some pulled
201
Lecture 28: First Restaurants, Chefs, and Gastronomy
it off well and charged their customers a fortune, and others were
less extravagant and had to lower their standards to attract more
customers. In the smaller restaurants, the number of courses was
fewer, and the quantity of food was less—the general trend up to
the present—but the structure of the meal stayed the same across
restaurants: from light foods to heavy in the middle and back to
light at the end.
202

The first and most important celebrity chef is Marie Antonin
Carême, who served as chef to Prime Minister Talleyrand and Baron
Rothschild, Emperor Alexander of Russia, and King George IV.
Carême is generally recognized as the founder of grande cuisine,
which is the height of classic French cooking. Carême is also
credited with inventing the classic chef’s jacket and toque, or “toque
blanche,” which is a uniform that only trained chefs are entitled to
wear—indicative of the professionalization of this business.

Another celebrity chef was Alexis Soyer, who eventually became
chef for the Reform Club in London. Through his popularity, Soyer
did many positive things. He was sent to Ireland to open soup
kitchens during the potato blight, and he worked with people like
Florence Nightingale in the Crimean War by providing food for
the troops. It was Soyer’s A Shilling Cookery for the People, which
explained how to make meals on a limited budget, that really won
people’s respect.

Chearles Elmé Francatelli was another mid-19th-century celebrity,
who eventually worked for Queen Victoria. He also published one
of the more popular cookbooks of the era, The Modern Cook, in
1845, but the most remarkable thing he wrote was a pamphlet called
A Plain Cookery Book for The Working Classes (1861), which tells
how to set up a kitchen and how to cook basic but nutritious foods
economically. It was presumably written for women who had never
learned how to cook from their mothers.

Toward the end of the century is the last of these celebrities,
Auguste Escoffier, who made his fame in the restaurants of the
finest luxury hotels in Europe. Escoffier’s Guide Culinaire is still
the professional chef’s bible on classic French dishes. It contains
2,984 recipes, all meticulously cross-referenced and indexed.
Escoffier also essentially invented how modern kitchen staffs are
organized—with a rigorous hierarchy and chain of command and
into separate departments.
Gastronomy
 Gastronomy, the science and art of eating well, also develops in the
19th century. The most prominent gastronomes were a combination
of scientists researching the physiology of taste, restaurant critics,
and food writers expounding on the art of fine eating. These people
become arbiters of taste—precisely in the way that court chefs used
to be—but they’re writing for popular audiences, for anyone with
enough money to patronize restaurants or buy ingredients and have
them cooked well.

Grimod de La Reyniere, who wrote Almanach des Gourmands,
is the father of the modern restaurant review. Probably the most
well-known gastronome was Jean-Anthelme Brillat-Savarin, who
wrote a book called Physiologie du Gout in 1825 that was not just
about taste in the chemical or physical sense, but also about what
constitutes good taste, how best to enjoy food, and why it should be
a serious concern.

What makes Brillat-Savarin’s work so timeless is that he has an
excellent sense for what the French call le terroir, which involves the
nature of the soil, the climate, the local produce, when ingredients
come into season, and how to serve them without spoiling them.
In other words, he’s not a food snob; he’s a gastronome, someone
trying to analyze the nature of taste and why things taste good.

His best-known saying is in the aphorisms that open his book and
is probably among the most often misquoted things anyone has
written: “Tell me what you eat: I will tell you what you are.” He
means that you can tell someone’s personality from what they eat.
Are they conservative or adventurous? Do they want bland food, or
203
food that is rich and spicy? Do they want food that is familiar and
native, or exotic?
Suggested Reading
Arndt, Culinary Biographies.
Brillat-Savarin, The Physiology of Taste.
Escoffier, Memories.
Ferguson, Accounting for Taste.
Gigante, Gusto.
Gigante, Taste.
Jacobs, Eating Out.
Kelly, Cooking for Kings.
Lecture 28: First Restaurants, Chefs, and Gastronomy
Korsmeyer, Making Sense of Taste.
Spang, The Invention of the Restaurant.
Trubek, How the French Invented the Culinary Profession.
Willan, Great Cooks.
Culinary Activity
The next time you go out to a fancy restaurant, take particular notice of
the dining protocols. How are you seated, and by whom? Are you helped
into your seat? Does anyone unfold a napkin and place it on your lap? This
sometimes still happens and was once commonplace. Are there separate staff
members for pouring water, suggesting wine, or removing dishes? Try to
keep track of the entire staff serving you. How does the waiter or waitress
approach you, and where does he or she physically stay? Is it out of the
way unobtrusively, or hovering nearby? How many tables does each server
manage? You will notice that, normally, the more expensive the restaurant,
the greater the proliferation of servers (which stands to reason), but also
the greater the ritualization of behavior. Is this simply because much more
money is involved, or do people enjoy playacting in restaurants in order
204
to feel important, wealthy, or sophisticated? Why do people seem to enjoy
this kind of formality, and when is it inappropriate? When do restaurants
or patrons miscommunicate about the level of formality—that is, not only
getting the dress code wrong or not understanding which fork to use, but also
seriously misreading the drama that unfolds in the course of a meal? Analyze
whether your restaurant and server matched the expectations of the diners
well. Also consider how restaurant manners change over time—especially
recently, as restaurants are becoming increasingly less snooty and more
casual. Why is this happening lately?
205
Big Business and the Homogenization of Food
Lecture 29
I
Lecture 29: Big Business and the Homogenization of Food
n the late 19th and early 20th centuries, a wave of new technology arrives,
and food habits are changed drastically. This lecture focuses on the
seizure of what we can now call the food industry in late-19th-century
Europe and America by big business. In fact, the process of food production
is taken from smaller hands forcefully at nearly every stage—from the
farmers in the field to processing plants, to marketing and advertising, to
transport and retailing, and even down to the way it’s prepared in the
home with new labor-saving devices. In other words, food itself becomes
big business.
Innovation in the Food Industry
 Before the 19th century, European and American food had depended
on a lot of interconnected businesses working in cooperation. In the
late 19th century, big businesses increasingly figure out how to own
everything, including the fields and the processing plants. What had
previously been a synergistic community of businesses becomes a
single very large business.
206

There are two very important developments in the late 19th century
that make all of this possible, and they are absolutely indispensable
to understanding how and why food undergoes fundamental
changes. First is what has been called a second industrial revolution,
which is really just a continuation of the first a century or so later,
but this one happened quicker, involved more advanced science,
and did much more to change what gets called food—and not
always for the better. The other thing happening at this time is a
second wave of imperialism.

Probably the most important discoveries and inventions involve
using new forms of energy. In the mid-19th century, coal, gas, and
oil were the main forms of energy. The big change comes with the
use of electricity. Within a few years after its invention, New York
City had been electrified with streetlights, which means that people
can now shop into the night.

Most importantly, electricity came into people’s homes, and almost
immediately, manufacturers came out with a slew of devices that
they claimed would be labor-saving and would free the drudge of
a housewife from her daily chores. In 1910, advertisements for
electric toasters pummel people from every direction. Then, in
1926, they came out with the new and improved pop-up toaster.

Just keeping up with the standard level of material culture
increasingly means more of the average family’s income gets
spent on gadgets, often superfluous, that change the relationship
to food. In the end, these gadgets wear out and get dumped in a
trash heap. This trend starts out slowly and reaches its apogee in
the mid-20th century, but the push to create more and more so-called
labor-saving devices begins in the late 19th century and is almost
completely contingent upon electricity.

The dishwasher was invented in 1886 in Shelbyville, Illinois, by
Josephine Cochrane. The first people to buy a dishwasher didn’t
do it to save labor (because they had servants); it was supposed
to prevent breakage at the hands of clumsy servants. Eventually,
a small model was produced for middle-class homes and was
advertised as the miracle labor-saving device that could spare the
tired housewife hours of drudgery at the sink every night.

With the advent of gasoline-burning engines, trucking extended the
range of where goods could be delivered and sold—far beyond the
end of a railroad track—and these new engines were also put into
steel-hulled ships that move very quickly and could even get fruits
and vegetables to the Northern Hemisphere from the south out of
season. The types of food people ate completely changed thanks to
international shipping.

In the mid-19th century, after many years of experimentation, the
first commercial refrigerators are invented, so meat no longer has
207
Lecture 29: Big Business and the Homogenization of Food
to be driven on the hoof to market. It can be slaughtered in one
central place—usually Chicago—packed into refrigerated cars, and
shipped everywhere. The fridge doesn’t come into domestic use
until the 20th century. Eventually, people are able to shop for more
foods at once and store them relatively dependably in an icebox,
or fridge.
208

In the 1880s, the process of freezing food really takes off. Clarence
Birdseye is the pioneer in this business, and his singular stroke
of genius was that if he bought directly from the growers and
did all the processing, packaging, distribution, and marketing
himself, he could sell it everywhere—which is of course exactly
what happened.

This led to everyone across the country eating the same frozen
peas instead of fresh ones, which is not necessarily a bad thing,
because you can now get them year round. This affected both the
producer and the consumer: They’re not connected in any way now,
and the growers have to produce to strict specifications set down
by Mr. Birdseye—not what his customers ask for or what may
be traditional in each region. In other words, foods and taste are
becoming homogenized.

The other technology that completely transforms the food industry
is canning, which was dependent on Louis Pasteur, who, in the
course of his research into beer yeast strains, not only discovered
the role of bacteria as human pathogens, but also figured out that if
you heat up foods to a certain temperature to kill all the bacteria and
then hermetically seal it off, food doesn’t spoil.

Pasteurization has made a lot of foods safer than they were before
it was discovered in 1862. However, the U.S. government went a
little overboard, and big business had a suspiciously large role in
getting legislation passed that made pasteurization mandatory.

A few years ago, lobbyists came very close to getting all
unpasteurized cheeses banned in the United States. However, such
a ban may be unnecessary. People in Europe aren’t dropping dead
left and right from eating unpasteurized cheese; in fact, they have
been eating these cheeses for centuries. This is only one example
of what can happen when big business takes over food production.

Another invention is steel, which is much cheaper in the long run
to make than iron, and much stronger. Machines themselves can
be made from it, with replaceable parts. In the kitchen, stainless
steel—an alloy of steel and nickel and enough chromium to form a
protective surface—is developed after the turn of the century. Foodprocessing equipment can now be built on an enormous scale.

There are also communications breakthroughs, including
telephones, radios, and phonographs. These inventions lead not
only to advertising, but also to a quicker pace of business—the
ability to organize businesses on a much larger and international
scale. There’s also photography and eventually moving pictures,
which will revolutionize the way things are sold to people, and
because they’re expensive to mass-produce, it will tend to be only
the biggest companies that can do it, pushing out all the others.
From Peanuts to Peanut Butter
 Into the 19th century, most people just ate peanuts as a snack food,
roasted. Growers were small and independent. Distributors who
shipped and sold them remained small scale, and most importantly,
the vendors were small, privately owned operations.

At the time that John Harvey Kellogg, following a vegetarian diet,
promoted nut butters as a healthy meat substitute, peanut butter was
made at home. This process was time consuming, laborious, messy,
and difficult. Like other health-food products, peanut butter began
to go mainstream. In 1901, the first recipe for peanut butter with
jelly was published.

Technology, big business, and mass manufacturing all combine to
make peanut butter cheap. Soon, sugar is added, and it’s marketed
209
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
Lecture 29: Big Business and the Homogenization of Food
Peanut butter, although high in calories, is a very nutritious, protein-filled food.
to children, and the role it plays in the American diet—who eats it
and why—completely changes.
210

At first, there were just a handful of small factories selling peanut
butter. The equipment was relatively cheap, the raw materials were
cheap, and with relatively little labor, you could manufacture and sell
peanut butter to local grocers. However, peanut butter is not a very
stable product. The oil tends to separate, it goes rancid fairly quickly
when that happens, and sometimes the salt recrystallizes. As a result,
the operations remain small around the turn of the century.

The popularity of peanut butter grew, and two companies began to
dominate the market: the Beech-Nut company and Heinz. These
companies made other products, too, so they had bigger operations,
more capital to invest, and larger marketing networks. They
could afford machinery that produced a more consistent product
that wouldn’t go rancid in the jar. More importantly, they could
afford advertising.

In 1922, Joseph L Rosefield of the Rosefield Packing company in
Alameda, California, takes the newly discovered technology of
turning unsaturated fats into saturated ones by hydrogenating them
and applies it to the oil in peanut butter—which is normally liquid
at room temperature, but is now solid, so it never separates. He also
added a lot of sugar so that it would taste even better. The name he
eventually settled on for his new product was Skippy.

An advertising blitz results, followed by market takeover. The only
real competitor to survive was Peter Pan, which had a comparable
product. The result is that a product controlled locally and prepared
fresh becomes a more stable but less healthy food, claims to be
“convenient,” and becomes a staple.

Almost the same thing happens to the peanut-processing industry.
Two Italian immigrants, Obici and Peruzzi, began frying peanuts
in their small operation in Wilkes-Barre, Pennsylvania, which
they called Planters Peanuts. What separated them from all other
processors is that they moved their plant to the South, where
they could buy the peanuts and process them immediately. They
eventually took over the entire industry and turned peanuts into a
major article of consumption around the country.

By the late 19th century, practically all of the processed snack
and junk foods we are familiar with—including animal crackers,
chewing gum, and soda—were being mass produced and marketed
nationwide.
Suggested Reading
Burnett, Liquid Pleasures.
Burnett, Plenty and Want.
Laszlo, Citrus.
211
Levenstein, Paradox of Plenty.
Murray, Moveable Feasts.
Siegers, Exploring the Food Chain.
Wilson, Swindled.
Woloson, Refined Tastes.
Lecture 29: Big Business and the Homogenization of Food
Culinary Activity
Think of the ways new mass-manufactured products have been used in
recipes, sometimes in the end becoming classics like green bean casserole
and Rice Krispies treats. We now take for granted that cans and boxes will
have recipes on them or that manufacturers will produce their own recipe
booklets. In this exercise, think of a brand-name, industrially manufactured
product. See how quickly you can find a recipe online that incorporates that
product. Simply type in the product name and the word recipe. How and why
did food manufacturers get in the business of writing recipes? How and why
did these become traditional? Think of as many brand-name products as you
can that are used in now-classic recipes. Chocolate-chip cookies are a good
example. Now choose one of these classics and try to cook it using entirely
fresh ingredients. For example, the recipe for a green bean casserole might
be as follows.
Trim the ends off two pounds of string beans, cut them in half lengthwise,
and blanch them in boiling water for 30 seconds. Then, immediately plunge
them into cold water. Meanwhile, sauté sliced mushrooms in butter with
a little salt and a tablespoon of flour, and stir. Then, add milk and chicken
stock, and continue stirring until slightly thickened. Drain the string beans,
put them in a casserole dish, pour the mushroom mixture on top, and stir well
to coat the string beans. Then, thinly slice two onions, and toss lightly with
seasoned flour. Fill a pan halfway with oil, and heat to about 350 degrees.
Fry the onion slices in small batches, and place on top of the casserole. Then,
bake it for 40 minutes in a 325-degree oven. Serve.
212
Food Imperialism around the World
Lecture 30
F
rom the late 19th century up to World War I, industrial food production
began to have impacts on a global scale. In this lecture, you will learn
how regions outside of Europe and America were linked to the global
economy and were increasingly controlled by the interests and desires of
affluent consumers in the wealthier countries of the world. You will learn
how modern industrial processing affected the rest of the world, which was
apparently just waiting to be modern.
Industrialized Nations and Their Colonies
 Manufacturers in the industrialized nations—England, France,
Belgium, Germany, northern Italy, and the United States, and soon
to catch up, Japan—want two things: new markets in which to sell
their mass-produced goods (including processed foods) and raw
materials (including food) that unconquered regions might provide.

Often, they promote colonization without even knowing what they
might find in these places, but under the assumption that there may
be something there and that they might as well gobble it up before
some other country does. They were also thinking that given the
climate (most of these regions are tropical or subtropical), they
could at least create plantations to grow food, which can now be
shipped more efficiently in new steamships and refrigerated trains.

Specifically, European powers scramble to carve up Africa and
Asia between them and build themselves empires. The results of
imperialism can be devastating to local inhabitants, even when
Europeans brought with them the trappings of what they considered
progress, advancement, and religion. In the process, they also
destroyed indigenous cultures and ways of life, particularly
traditional foodways. Perhaps more importantly, they made those
people dependent on the colonial empires.
213
Lecture 30: Food Imperialism around the World
214

Although the developed nations don’t usually literally conquer
other nations with military force anymore—at least not overtly—the
powerful nations do still exercise a kind of economic imperialism
over “Third World” nations by extending aid or credit in exchange
for markets, investment opportunities, and trading privileges. There
is still a relationship of dominance that has a direct bearing on food
production, distribution, and who gets what to eat.

Industrialized nations had a few key things: big populations and
cheap labor. That meant a steady tax base and the ability to build
large bureaucracies and big armies. Increasingly, these armies
became mechanized armies with industrially produced weapons.

England was the only nation that still had extensive colonies, and
the nations that were industrialized began to look to Britain and
wonder whether the colonies accounted for their success. You need
colonies to provide raw materials and people overseas to buy massproduced goods. There were also chauvinistic rivalries involved.

European powers expected to find gold and diamond in these
colonies, especially in South Africa. In the tropics, they thought
of foods that could be grown on massive plantations—things that
everyone now consumes in vast quantities, including sugar, coffee,
tea, chocolate, spices, tropical fruits, rice, and rubber. All of these
are monoculture cash crops.

These countries had no qualms about pure exploitation of natural
resources in the process of obtaining these cash crops. The investors
justified this by assuring that their operations would provide jobs
and that native peoples working for these big companies could now
earn wages rather than scraping out an existence in subsistence
agriculture. Native peoples may have only made a few cents a
day and were no longer able to grow their own food, but now they
could buy it. Scarcely anyone on the planet was able to escape the
influence of this.

The companies themselves aren’t going out and conquering new
territories, but they do get involved indirectly. Companies often
provide campaign money for politicians, and if they are pro-empire,
they will be supported. Politicians need big money to campaign,
and companies need policies that work to their favor. This neat
little partnership is forged and, indirectly, industry supports the
enterprise of empire.
The Plight of Farmers
 Like most places on Earth, there was rapid population growth in
these regions in the late 18th and early 19th centuries, but there was
no outlet for their population in growing cities because there was no
industry to buy up their cheap labor. As a result, all of these people
remained in the countryside and became increasingly impoverished,
on smaller and smaller plots of land. Without the latest agricultural
advances—chemical fertilizers, machines, and hybrid plants—they
were having an increasingly hard time being fed.

The smart farmers realized that to survive, they would have to
invest in new equipment, and they of course went into debt to buy
machinery. Then, if the price for their crop dropped, they were
forced to foreclose. Whereas once they might have been poor
subsistence farmers, they have now become linked—and at the
mercy of a huge global trading system.

These farmers’ lives are far more precarious than when food was
supplied locally, and now they are prey to food speculators, who
hoard grain and wait for the price to go up. The locals are now
subject to market forces that are totally out of their control. It was
the same story nearly everywhere: In the end, the vast monocultures
supplying the international markets won.

Before the 20th century, the French used to get through famines,
but in the early 20th century, they were crushed by them. It was
one country producing for the profit of another that caused the
famines—not natural disaster.
215
Lecture 30: Food Imperialism around the World

Sometimes getting people to work for the big companies was done
with force, too. In the Amazon, Indians were driven off their plots
and forced to carry rubber for a British company. In the Belgian
Congo, they just burned the local villages so that the people were
forced to come and work on newly cleared plot.

Even more subtly, the imperial power could just tax the locals
exorbitantly, which essentially is getting them to devote a portion
of their land and labor to the imperial power for nothing. If the
locals have no money (which was often the case), they would be
invited to grow cash crops for export, which the colonizers would
buy. Therefore, for example, Africans go from growing millet and
sorghum for their own use to growing peanuts and cotton for export.
Banana Republic
 In 1870, the vast majority of Americans have never seen or eaten
a banana, unless they went to the tropics or someone brought
one back as a novelty. Captain Lorenzo Baker, a New England
seaman, was in Jamaica and noticed people selling bananas, and
he decided to give it a shot, so he bought 160 bunches and got
them to Jersey City in 11 days. People went berserk over them. He
was so successful that within a few years, he founded the Boston
Fruit Company.
216

At almost exactly the same time, another investor decided to
approach the government of Costa Rica with a railroad-building
scheme, and he was given both a land grant to build and ample
acreage straddling the railroad. He then got the idea of lining the
tracks with bananas, which could be harvested and shipped directly
from all over the country. He also did very well.

Over time, these two companies merged, creating a bigger
operation, which became the United Fruit Company in 1899. These
two men developed their own distribution system, built their own
fleet of ships, went public on the New York Stock Exchange, set
up a communications network via radio, and even carried mail to
the United States. Essentially, they monopolized all transport and

They succeeded by secretly
arranging with leaders in local
governments that the United
Fruit Company, or sometimes
even the United States
government, would keep these
people in power and protect
them—even though some of
them were dictators—as long
as they helped the company
maintain their monopoly. It
worked to the mutual benefit of
both parties, but not of course
to the benefit of the workers,
who were not allowed to
organize or create unions.

In 1944, they changed the name Banana plants grow bananas in
of the brand to Chiquita and bunches that hang downward.
introduced this sexy cartoon
Latina girl with fruit on her head as their logo. They also “branded”
their produce by affixing little blue labels to every banana. Needless
to say, they absolutely cornered the market, supplying 70 percent of
the market worldwide.

Until the mid-1990s, Chiquita controlled the whole market. All of
a sudden, the European Union decided that it wasn’t not fair that
this one company held a virtual monopoly, and they knew that they
could be growing bananas in their former colonies and supplying
Europe. However, Chiquita, with their economy of scale and huge
operation, always undersold them, so they decided to place a quota
and tariff on South American bananas.
217
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
communications networks from Costa Rica, Guatemala, Honduras,
Panama, and Colombia.
Lecture 30: Food Imperialism around the World

This completely enraged Chiquita, and somehow they managed to
convince Bill Clinton to strike back and place a 100 percent tariff
on luxury goods from Europe. As a counterretaliation, Europe
wouldn’t buy U.S. beef raised on hormones, and a full-scale trade
war developed.

At the exact same time, Ecuador suddenly enters the market
and starts selling bananas. By paying obscenely low wages and
forbidding unions, they can sell really cheap bananas. Suddenly,
there’s a glut on the market, and the worldwide price drops
dramatically. Chiquita went briefly into bankruptcy in 2002.

The global food supply is subject to forces of international
competition, sometimes with grave consequences for the people
who actually grow these foods. Another perhaps unforeseen
consequence of constructing these massive empires was that
although the conquered peoples were not given citizenship,
they were given the right to move anywhere within the empire.
Frequently, these kinds of movements were encouraged or
sponsored by the European powers to shift the labor force and send
supplies of cheap labor to a place where it was needed.
Suggested Reading
Clarkson, Menus from History.
Higman, Jamaican Food.
Koeppel, Banana.
Krondl, Taste of Conquest.
Pilcher, Food in World History.
Smith, Peanuts.
Vernon, Hunger.
218
Culinary Activity
In the late 19th century, cookbooks incorporated exotic ingredients drawn
from throughout the colonial world, in a sense boasting the imperial
connections and technological achievements that could supply these new
foods. Notice also how newly introduced ingredients appear in recipes—
often in strange and random ways. Consider, for example, the following
recipe for bananas that appeared in the 1896 edition of Fannie Farmer’s
Boston Cooking School Cookbook. We cannot recommend it.
Banana Salad
Remove one section of skin from each of four bananas. Take out fruit, scrape,
and cut fruit from one banana in thin slices, fruit from other three bananas
in one-half inch cubes. Marinate cubes in French Dressing. Refill skins and
garnish each with slices of banana. Stack around a mound of lettuce leaves.
219
Immigrant Cuisines and Ethnic Restaurants
Lecture 31
I
Lecture 31: Immigrant Cuisines and Ethnic Restaurants
n this lecture, you will learn about immigration and the proliferation
of ethnic cuisines in the late 19th and 20th centuries. This lecture will
examine not only the people who came to the United States and their
cooking styles, but also how those cuisines went mainstream and became
part of American cooking in general and, thereafter, became part of global
cuisine. Specifically, you will discover that the narrowing of the menu, using
familiar ingredients, and then marketing explain how Americans became
such avid consumers of ethnic cuisines.
Immigration’s Effect on Food
 In the course of the 19th century, the population of Europe more
than doubled—from 188 million to about 432 million. The largest
concentration of migration occurred between 1815 and 1932, when
immigration quotas were imposed. About 60 million people left
Europe and went to North and South America, Australia, and New
Zealand. The population of North America (including Canada) went
from 6 million to 81 million, largely due to immigration.
220

In Europe, the population explosion led to increased pressure on
land in terms of serious crowding. Usually, a generation after a
sharp spike in population, the children born in these baby booms
had no other recourse but to leave. The largest exodus was from
precisely those places that were not yet industrialized, where there
were no big factories and teeming cities in which to find work—or
new colonies to find administrative jobs or running plantations.

The sharpest rise in emigration from Europe also came at the
very end of the 19th and early 20th centuries. This was partly due
to climactic changes and crop failure. There was also a phylloxera
epidemic in wine-growing regions. In addition, it was physically
possible to travel long distances via steamship.

Although most of the people who emigrated from Europe to America
were from poor areas, they were generally not the poorest of the poor.
It was usually the small peasant landowner or craftsman whose jobs
were threatened by big landowners or cheap mass-manufactured
goods. Most of the people who went were also young and unmarried
or had young families. Interestingly, many people—perhaps as many
as one in three—went back to Europe after a few years.

As is often the case when one set of families blaze the trail, a slew
of other family members or friends follow in their wake, and they
tend to stick together in their own distinctive neighborhoods, which
means that they didn’t assimilate. The general pattern is that the
first generation to emigrate rarely becomes fully assimilated, but
their children—the second generation, who are born in the new
land—want to assimilate. Ironically, it’s the third generation that
struggles to figure out who they are and where they came from and
suddenly gets interested in the old language, culture, and recipes.

The other very interesting thing about the influx of peoples is
that although their own tastes may have changed from generation
to generation and they may or may not have become assimilated,
most of the cuisines of these peoples did survive. Sometimes they
evolved, making use of ingredients available in the United States,
or they may have toned down the flavors after a few generations.

Even more fascinating is that most of these cuisines have, to some
degree, been adopted by Americans on the whole. Some ethnic
dishes go completely mainstream; others are at least known by
most Americans or recognized as coming from a certain place.
Many ethnic dishes get toned down or adapted to American tastes,
especially in restaurants, but they survive in some form.

Ironically, the obsession with maintaining traditions has created
some very interesting fossils among immigrant populations. That
is, they may prepare a dish or eat a certain food with meticulous
care that it not be changed, but back in the mother country, the dish
evolved or sometimes even disappeared entirely.
221
Lecture 31: Immigrant Cuisines and Ethnic Restaurants

Despite these culinary fossils, cuisines must change, or they
become museum relics. Without the original ingredients, same
cooking utensils and fuel source, or even the same social context,
it’s impossible and futile to even try to make authentic dishes.

Another truly fascinating phenomenon is when an item becomes
mainstream and is then reexported back to the home country in its
new form. Sometimes, of course, it is the mass-manufactured or
canned version that is exported—sometimes back home, but more
often elsewhere.
Italian Food
 There is probably no single cuisine that has become more
thoroughly adopted by Americans than Italian food. Many of the
basic ingredients grown or raised in Italy are for the most part also
grown in the United States and were introduced by Italian farmers.
That’s why Americans use the Italian name for these ingredients,
including broccoli, zucchini, radicchio, and arugula.
222

Other foods, that were not originally familiar to Americans, were
soon introduced—including foods like olive oil and even wine.
In addition, a whole slew of vegetables (artichokes, eggplant,
tomatoes, peppers, and garlic) entered into the American diet after
Italians settled in the United States. In fact, it’s ironic that tomatoes
had to be reintroduced to the Americas by Italians.

Pizza changes in the United States because it’s cooked in a
commercial pizza oven—with more affluence—and people want to
eat more ingredients, and they want meat on it. Pizzas are larger
and cut in slices because America is a faster-paced society. The
pizzeria selling by the slice is an American invention; Italy has it
now, because Italians are now more like Americans.

Italian food is very interesting because it really only catches on
outside immigrant groups when it’s marketed widely. Tomato sauce
in a can, for example, is only made in the United States on a large
scale once Americans get in a war with Italy and the supply of
imported sauce dries up. The new U.S. manufacturers think there’s
no reason not to sell tomato sauce to all Americans, and they do
so very successfully. It’s the same story with dry pasta, parmesan
cheese, and macaroni and cheese.

The fact that these foods become American is also ironic, considering
that nutritionists did their best to change eating habits of Italian
immigrants. They thought their cooking was too spicy, reeked too
much of garlic, and was not well balanced because there were so
many vegetables and people didn’t consume enough meat and milk.
Thankfully, they failed, and in a complete reversal of fate, everyone
started eating Italian food. That’s the result not only of restaurants,
but especially of mass-manufactured Italian-American food.
Jewish Food
 Another example of an ethnic cuisine that has gone mainstream is
Jewish food from eastern Europe. The cuisine of eastern European
Jews is not terribly different from what their non-Jewish neighbors
in Europe were eating—it was just adapted.

Obviously, they didn’t eat pork, but they could eat beef, which
was made into a whole variety of cured products like corned beef,
pastrami, and pickled tongue—all the things we associate today
with a kosher deli, as well as dill pickles and knishes. Another thing
that all of their neighbors ate was dumplings, but uniquely, the Jews
made them out of matzo meal into matzo balls (knaidlach), which
are eaten in chicken soup.

Although there are many Jewish dishes that never went mainstream,
the most fascinating one that did is the bagel, which is boiled and
then baked, so it has a very hard, crunchy exterior and a soft inside.
It is not a round bread with a hole, nor does it need to be toasted.
The traditional way to eat them is with cream cheese and lox, and
some people put a slice of onion on it.

Apart from poor imitations, the bagel changed in the United States
with a variety of flavors. Originally, bagels were plain or topped
223
with salt or maybe egg. Now, there are many types of bagels,
including cinnamon raisin, chocolate, whole wheat, and all sorts of
bizarre flavors.
Mexican Food
 The story of Mexican immigration is unique, partly because many of
the people didn’t immigrate. Instead, the United States swallowed a
huge chunk of what was once part of Mexico: the entire Southwest,
California, and Texas. There was later immigration also—partly in
the form of migrant labor, but also in the form of a lot of people
who came looking for jobs, not always permanently.
The cuisine of Mexico is extremely varied and very different from
what Americans think of as Mexican, which is largely the cuisine of
the border regions, or even Tex-Mex. The remarkable thing about
this cuisine is that it gained a wide following. Salsa, tortilla chips,
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
Lecture 31: Immigrant Cuisines and Ethnic Restaurants

Mexican cuisine drastically changed after it was introduced to the United States.
224
nachos, tacos, burritos, and fajitas are all evolved forms of relatives
back in Mexico.

These types of foods all become well known among the general
populace through mass-manufactured products like Doritos or
in Mexican restaurants that serve what American diners expect.
For the most part, there is a standard repertoire of dishes that are
uniquely Mexican-American.

Even though the range of flavors is significantly toned down,
Mexican cuisine is exciting precisely because it’s spicy, well
seasoned, and offers a range of flavors and textures that are
completely outside of what most people think of as standard
American fare. However, at the same time, it’s familiar and
recognizable. The simplification is the key to its success.
Chinese Food
 Chinese cuisine is by and large Cantonese cooking that evolved
from 19th-century mishmashes of whatever immigrants could find,
given few of the same vegetables or cooking implements—or much
of anything that would have been used in China. Almost all of the
American Chinese dishes, such as fried rice, egg rolls, and sweetand-sour pork, involve a stir-fried meat and vegetables with rice.

Chinese cuisine has a very limited repertoire with a standard set of
flavorings, including soy, ginger, garlic, and sesame oil—nothing
that would surprise or alarm diners. It became mainstream because
it became codified and predictable. Chinese restaurants proliferated
everywhere, with takeout and delivery options.
Suggested Reading
Denker, The World on a Plate.
Diner, Hungering for America.
Gabbacia, We Are What We Eat.
225
Mintz, Tasting Food, Tasting Freedom.
Pilcher, Que Vivan los Tamales.
Witt, Black Hunger.
Zeigelman, 97 Orchard.
Culinary Activity
Lecture 31: Immigrant Cuisines and Ethnic Restaurants
A New Way to Cook Vermicelli
Antonia Isola was the pseudonym of Mabel Earl McGinnis, who wrote the
first Italian cookbook published in the United States in 1912, entitled Simple
Italian Cookery. She had spent time in Rome and purported to introduce
mainstream Americans to authentic Italian food, a process that continues
to this day. As one can see from the following unusual technique, Italian
American food and Italian food had already begun to drift apart, and this
recipe clearly reflects the latter.
Timbale of Vermicelli with Tomatoes (Neapolitan Recipe)
Take ten medium-sized fresh tomatoes and cut them in two crosswise. Put
a layer of these into a baking-dish with the liquid side touching the bottom
of the dish. Now put another layer with the liquid side up, sprinkle on salt
and pepper. Break the raw vermicelli the length of the baking-dish and put
a layer of it on top of the tomatoes. Now add another layer of the tomatoes,
with the skin side touching the vermicelli, a second layer with the liquid side
up, salt and pepper, and another layer of the raw vermicelli, and so on, the
top layer being of tomatoes with their liquid side touching the vermicelli.
Heat three or four tablespoons of good lard (or butter), and when the lard
boils pour it over the tomatoes and vermicelli; then put the dish into the oven.
226
War, Nutritionism, and the Great Depression
Lecture 32
I
n this lecture, you will learn how World War I, along with later events
of the early 20th century, changed how civilians ate. A precondition for
the role of food in mechanized warfare was simply the expansion of
agriculture and ranching, both of which had become big businesses. During
that time, farming had become thoroughly mechanized, and the price of
food dropped dramatically. In the early years of the century, Americans were
extremely well fed—especially by comparison with the rest of the world—
and it was largely this abundance that made the United States crucial to the
war effort.
World War I
 When World War I broke out, the United States was isolationist
and had no intention of getting involved in the conflict. Germany
mobilized very quickly and invaded Belgium with the intention of
sweeping down into France, and the two countries basically dug
trenches and fought for several years on the Western Front.

In the middle of it all, the Belgians, who were by this point largely
dependent on imports for food, were completely cut off—until
Herbert Hoover, who was living in London at the time, decided to
mount a rescue operation entirely on his own volition and without
any pay. He convinced the Germans that because the United States
was neutral, he should be allowed to send food into Belgium.

Hoover also had to convince the British, who were afraid that
anything he sent would be eaten by German soldiers. A deal was
finally arranged, and Hoover organized food relief—including the
shipping, distribution, and cooking—for 10 million people every
day. This worked for several years, until the United States entered
the war and unrestricted submarine warfare hit many U.S. trading
vessels and the Lusitania, carrying U.S. citizens.
227
Lecture 32: War, Nutritionism, and the Great Depression
228

Woodrow Wilson appointed Hoover as the practical dictator of the
government’s wartime Food Administration. In 1917, Wilson passed
through Congress the Lever Act, or the Food and Fuel Control Act,
which basically gave the government complete control of prices,
transport of food (to prevent hoarding and shortages), and careful
control of all exports. Perhaps most importantly, Hoover was given
control of a huge propaganda machine to convince people to eat
less so that food could be sent to soldiers and allies abroad.

When the war ended, Hoover insisted that the United States
continue aid—even to the Germans, who he thought would never
be allies in the future if they were allowed to perish. The allies
prevented it, and of course, he was right. However, food did get to
most of Europe, in so-called care packages.

All of the food industries that had retooled to make quick,
convenient, and shelf-stable foods for the war effort were not about
to discontinue those lines, so after the war, they simply marketed
them to civilians. Army rations in cans are a good example.

The post-war period was also relatively prosperous. Brandname, nationally distributed products flourished, mounting huge
advertizing campaigns. They developed attractive packaging to
sell products, and foods (often originally designed for war) were
increasingly marketed with convenience in mind. Underlying all of
these changes was the fact that more people were now living and
working in cities, so there was a demand not only for more food,
but also more diverse kinds of food that could be prepared quickly
by busy people.

By 1900, the food processing industry accounted for 20 percent
of the nation’s manufacturing. Increasingly, there were fewer and
fewer food giants; instead, big corporations controlled the supply
of food. By the 1920s, a few big companies—including Nabisco,
Heinz, and General Foods—were dictating what people ate. At this
time, food manufacturing was the largest industry in the country,
surpassing even steel and textiles in the amount of money invested.

Not only was much of the food people ate highly processed, but
they also began to eat more. For maybe the first time in human
history, a population on the whole, rather than just a few elites,
was either very well fed or actually overfed. Food was cheap, and a
stout body meant affluence.

Newly arrived immigrants could afford more food than was ever
possible back in their homeland. After 1924, when the big influx
of immigrants stopped, and more children were born in the United
States rather than abroad, slowly these populations began to become
assimilated. They began to eat things like American breakfast
cereals and processed and canned foods because these were cheap
and marketed to them.

Retailing also changed in this period. Before this time, most food
was sold in small, privately owned shops. All that began to change
as supermarkets bought out small operations. Supermarkets can buy
produce and meat at much lower prices because they buy in huge
quantities, and because they have their own distribution systems,
they can buy food from much further afield and can consistently
sell food at cheaper prices than small grocers.
Developments Surrounding World War I
 In 1912, the Great Atlantic & Pacific Tea Company (A&P) opened
its first all-purpose grocery, as opposed to the teashops it had
operated for half of a century. In 1916, Piggly Wiggly opened the
first modern grocery store. It had aisles and shelves lined with
prepackaged and prepriced items. Speed, efficiency, and low prices
meant that big grocery chains pushed out the mom-and-pop stores.

In 1931, refrigerators also finally became practical devices once
their huge compressors that contained ammonia or sulfur dioxide,
which sometimes explodes, were replaced with a chlorinated
fluorocarbon (CFC) compound called Freon 12. As a result of
refrigeration, fresh fruit, vegetables, and dairy products also became
staples in ordinary households.
229
Lecture 32: War, Nutritionism, and the Great Depression
230

Because everything was prepackaged with readily identifiable
brand names, people could do larger shopping at one time, stocking
up the pantry and refrigerator for an entire week or longer with a
whole variety of foods that would last indefinitely. By the 1920s
and 1930s, there were all kinds of junk foods and household
convenience items like Pyrex dishes and KitchenAid mixers.

Perhaps just as important were new cookbooks—The Joy of
Cooking came out in 1931—along with all of the cookbooks made
by the manufacturers that explained how to use all of these new
products. There was also a slew of new ladies’ magazines like
Ladies’ Home Journal and Good Housekeeping, which touted the
wonderful benefits of food processing.

The discovery of the calorie and the role of vitamins in nutrition
were equally important. This was largely the result of research done
in World War I on how to feed soldiers more efficiently. Nutritional
scientists had already identified proteins, carbohydrates, and fats
and how the body makes use of them. Wilbur Atwater figured out
how many calories are used in various activities using a respiration
calorimeter, a large airtight tank in which metabolism could
accurately be measured.

Alongside of this was the development of home economics as an
academic discipline—one that was considered suitable for women
to enter—which was partly about domestic science (cooking and
household management), but was also increasingly about nutrition,
food science, and chemistry. Even the organization of the kitchen
became a serious topic.

However, all of the nutritional science and scientific studies did
not make quackery obsolete. Perhaps the strangest fad of the early
20th century was Fletcherizing, named after Horace Fletcher, who
lived in Venice and had endorsements of all sorts of scientists.
Fletcherizing meant to thoroughly chew food until it’s completely
broken down, which took about 100 chews per mouthful.
As a result of nutritional science—quack or legitimate—food
corporations began to advertise their products with explicit health
claims. Probably the most
ingenious was how spinach
growers paid for not just ads,
but also for a cartoon of Popeye
the sailor, whose iron-enriched
muscles bulged whenever he
gulped down a can of spinach.
Popeye was introduced in
1929, and in the 1930s, spinach
consumption rose 33 percent,
apparently saving the industry.
Prohibition and the Great Depression
 Aligned with a new interest in
health was probably one of the
stranger experiments the United
States has tried as a nation: Spinach contains a great deal of
Prohibition. The temperance iron and vitamins A and C.
movement was growing steadily
since the latter 19th century with groups like the Woman’s Christian
Temperance Union, and lobbying pressure became so great that the
Eighteenth Amendment made alcohol illegal—and it lasted for 13
years. Prohibition was intended to reduce crime and poverty and
improve the nation’s health.

People began drinking more hard liquor because beer and wine
were too difficult to transport. Liquor was smuggled in by gangs—
and there were only 1,500 federal officers employed to stop it—so
this actually led to increased crime. Crime in general rose because
Prohibition destroyed jobs. Breweries, bars, and wineries closed,
and the ones that survived had to either market malted milk or
grape juice—but most couldn’t survive.

The prosperity and completely unregulated wild speculation of the
1920s simply could not last. Agriculture was actually hit hard even
231
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.

before the stock market crash of 1929, and it had a lot to do with too
much food on the market and low prices. Then, there was a series
of terrible droughts, which led to people losing their farms, and the
failure of the banks caused peoples’ savings to be wiped out.
Lecture 32: War, Nutritionism, and the Great Depression

The Great Depression affected workers, too; there was the highest
unemployment in history. This disaster forced the government to
become directly involved in the food supply in ways that it never
had before. Roosevelt’s New Deal was essentially a series of
ad hoc emergency measures designed to deal with the crisis, but
it also changed the role of government in regulating food policy
permanently. For the first time, the government was forced to take
control of the economy and especially of the supply of food. They
began to tamper with supply-and-demand economics, bringing an
end to the free market economy—a legacy that remains, both for
good and ill, to this day.
Suggested Reading
Bower, Recipes for Reading.
Colquohon, Taste.
DePuis, Nature’s Perfect Food.
Freidberg, Fresh.
Gratzer, Terrors of the Table.
Hartog, Food Technology.
Helstosky, Garlic and Oil.
Kamminga, Science and Culture of Nutrition.
Levenstein, Fear of Food.
Marinetti, Futurist Cookbook.
Mudry, Measured Meals.
Oddy, Rise of Obesity.
232
Pilcher, Great Sausage Rebellion.
Pillsbury, No Foreign Food.
Sack, White Bread Protestants.
Schwartz, Never Satisfied.
Shapiro, Perfection Salad.
Stearns, Fat History.
Theophano, Eat My Words.
Valenze, Milk.
Culinary Activity
The early 20th century has been described as the golden age of advertising. It
certainly was the first time mass media was used extensively to sell products;
in fact, entirely new products were marketed in ingenious ways. Breakfast
cereals are merely one example. Chewing gum is another. Think of a food
product that appeared in this era. Search for images of advertisements for
this product. What tactics did the ads employ? Who were they targeting,
in terms of demographics, gender, and social class? Where did these ads
appear, and what was their primary appeal? In other words, was it rational
or emotional? Were scare tactics used, or were the ads aspirational, selling a
particular lifestyle? Deconstruct the text and images, and look for subliminal
messages. For example, an ad for vitamin-fortified pasta might claim that
children need to eat well to grow up healthy, and this brand of pasta is
nutritious. The subtext, though, is that friends and neighbors will look at your
scrawny children, and you will be ashamed for not feeding them well. This
is intended to scare you into buying the product. In the end, what are these
ads really selling—food or fantasy? Think how advertising today functions
much the same way, playing on our fears and desires.
233
World War II and the Advent of Fast Food
Lecture 33
E
Lecture 33: World War II and the Advent of Fast Food
very day, the equivalent of one in four adults in the United States
visits a fast-food restaurant. In 1970, Americans spent six billion
dollars on fast food. In 2000, Americans spent more than 110 billion,
which is more than what is spent on higher education, computers, or even
new cars. Currently, Americans spend about 240 billion dollars per annum,
which is more than double what it was a decade ago. In this lecture, you will
learn about fast food and its connections with World War II.
The Rise of Fast Food
 Like in World War I, adequate nutrition for soldiers and getting
food to the front were major concerns for the U.S. government in
World War II. The technology was in place to measure the calories
and nutrients necessary for maintaining health for soldiers, but
what went into average rations was surprising. The types of foods
that were sent to soldiers became staples of the post-war kitchen,
sold as being easy and convenient, or are what we would consider
junk food.
234

Designed by physiologist Ancel Keys in the early 1940s, K rations
were intended for short-term use by paratroopers and airborne
divisions. A K ration had to fit in a pocket and be edible cold. He
also had to compromise with what soldiers actually wanted to eat,
so it contained canned meat, crackers, chewing gum, cigarettes, and
a candy bar—plus a fruit-flavored powdered drink or instant coffee
and sugar. A standard C ration, which was for more regular use, had
more canned foods, including meat stew and dessert.

There were also broader effects of nutrition research during the
war. Roosevelt had a special Food and Nutrition Board, which was
organized to look into how food related to national defense, and in
1943, they came up with Recommended Daily Allowances (RDAs).
It is impossible to assess the impact that RDAs had initially, but it
is clear that nutrition labeling, food served in public schools and
institutions, as well as what was considered healthy by the general
populace was directly influenced by decisions made politically.

The war, and specifically rationing, had other immediate impacts.
The government wanted to send meat, fats, sugar, and canned
vegetables to the front, and in this war, they were rationed back at
home. There was also a growing realization that milling techniques
destroy nutrients in the white bread everyone was eating, so not to
become weak and unable to fight in the war and on the home front,
the government required that all bread be enriched with thiamine,
niacin, riboflavin, iron and calcium—as it still is today.

The other important technology that was developed during the war
was dehydration, which meant that you could ship dried foods that
were up to 99 percent lighter, so they sent to the front powdered
milk, dried eggs and mashed potato flakes, instant coffee, and dried
vegetables that could be part of instant soup mixes. Of course, all of
this caught on like wildfire back home after the war, and products
like these caused the culinary skills of most housewives to become
almost nonexistent.

Another thing that was developed in World War II was polyvinyl
chloride and plastics, which would not only revolutionize domestic
interior space with all sorts of cheap plastic goods, but also led to
plastic packaging for food, Tupperware containers, and Saran wrap.
Aluminum foil was also invented. In the post-war prosperity, food
technologists capitalized on young Americans’ latest addiction by
creating TV dinners, which are perhaps the single saddest thing
about the decay of our culture and the sociability of the meal as a
ritual that cements families together.

This phenomenon is, of course, linked to a dramatic rise in eating
out, which is itself contingent on the fact that practically everyone
now owns a car. They can drive anywhere they like to buy food
or eat at a restaurant. Most of these new restaurants were chains—
places that were familiar, whose name you knew—so that you
235
Lecture 33: World War II and the Advent of Fast Food
were less likely to be disappointed. Chain restaurants flourish
for the same reason chain stores and name brands do: They can
organize on a much larger scale, buy ingredients, and ship them
more efficiently.

Apart from being chains, many of these restaurants served fast food.
The novelty was that you could either drive up and be served right
in your car or go in and eat quickly and get back on the road. The
earliest versions go back to 1919, but fast food is not a uniquely
American phenomenon. Most cultures have a form of street food,
but fast food is food meant to be driven to.

Fast food does not necessarily taste bad. It is engineered to taste
good, with enough fat, salt, and sugar—all of which we may have
evolved to crave—along with flavor additives. It would not have
sold so well if it tasted bad. Needless to say, fast food is now a
global phenomenon.
The McDonald’s Empire
 McDonald’s really set the model for the modern fast-food sector.
Richard and Maurice McDonald opened their first restaurant in
Pasadena in 1937 and moved to San Bernardino a few years later.
The whole idea was to serve the food quickly, have an enormous
turnover, and keep the price as low as possible. Essentially, the
principles of the assembly line applied to food preparation.
236

The key to their success was doing away with waiters, or carhops
used in drive-ins. They did away with busboys and dishwashers.
Everything was self-service. With a dramatically reduced menu—
with no substitutions allowed—they could just churn out food
industrially, especially because the working space was streamlined
and automated as much as possible.

In the early 1950s, the McDonald brothers decided to start
franchising the business, which means that you sell the name for
a fee and build a restaurant, and a private investor operates it, but
he or she has to buy the ingredients from the mother company. In

The idea of using assembly lines and franchising caught on like
wildfire. In the first few years of the 1950s, a whole slew of people
went to check out the new McDonald’s and imitated it. Burger
King was founded in 1953, Wendy’s appeared shortly thereafter,
and other restaurants selling different kinds of foods followed the
same model—including Taco Bell, Kentucky Fried Chicken, and
Domino’s Pizza.

About 90 percent of all new jobs in the country are created by
McDonald’s Corporation. In fact, one in five people in the United
States have worked at a McDonald’s. Annually, McDonald’s
hires about one million people, which is more than any other
corporation—public or private. In 1968, they had 1,000 restaurants,
and now they have 31,000 worldwide and open about 2,000 new
ones every year.

McDonald’s is also the
nation’s largest purchaser
of beef, pork, and potatoes,
which means that if you
want to sell potatoes, you
have to grow the kind that
work in McDonald’s fryers—
Russet Burbanks, which are
the same spuds you see in
every supermarket.

McDonald’s is the largest
owner of retail property in Fast-food hamburgers are often
associated with the American way
the world, and they make of life.
more money on rent than
on selling food. They also spend more on advertising than any
brand. A survey of American school children showed that 96
237
© Stockbyte/Thinkstock.
1954, they hired Ray Kroc to handle the franchising, and he built it
into an empire. He eventually bought the whole company.
percent recognize Ronald McDonald. In fact, more people on Earth
recognize the golden arches than the cross.
Lecture 33: World War II and the Advent of Fast Food
Negative Consequences of Fast Food
 Clearly, the popularity of fast food had a lot to do with convenience.
It also has to do with more disposable income. People can afford to
eat out more, and the whole baby boom generation was targeted and
became addicted to fast food.
238

An unforeseen by-product of the fast-food industry is waste.
Because they don’t want to spend time washing dishes and
silverware, those things are replaced with disposable packaging.
They’ve actually gotten better in recent years—perhaps out of
concern for the environment or public pressure—but they once used
Styrofoam containers for the hamburgers, which led to huge piles
of Styrofoam that never biodegrade. Now, everything is wrapped in
paper, but it is still an enormous waste.

The biggest gripe against fast food has been the effect it has on
health. People have even tried to sue fast-food companies because
they became obese—as if they had no choice but to eat there or as
if they didn’t realize it was happening to them. People can look at
the nutrition labeling, which is now by law available to customers.
The people who eat this food seem to not be very concerned and are
certainly not going to stop eating it because of what the labels say.

Sometimes, positive good can result from the power fast-food
chains wield. For example, demanding that their suppliers improve
standards for raising chickens and abandon battery-raised farming
(those tiny, stacked cages) changed the entire industry immediately.

Another consequence of fast food is the way it is marketed
specifically to children. Happy meals include toys based on movies
that are released at the same time. It’s a way for Hollywood to
advertise and a way for the fast-food chain to attract kids. Ironically,
even if a movie flops, it can make a fortune by selling toys through
McDonald’s or Burger King. In fact, McDonald’s is one of the
nation’s largest distributors of toys.

Fast food also advertises during children’s programming in an
attempt to form brand loyalty—and even in public schools, which
accept money to help pad their dwindling budgets. Fast food is
also now finding other outlets, including at stadiums, airports,
gas stations, Walmart, in zoos, on airplanes, and even apparently
in hospitals.
Suggested Reading
Belasco and Scranton, eds., Food Nations.
Bentley, Eating for Victory.
Bobrow-Strain, White Bread.
Collingham, A Taste of War.
Counihan, Food in the USA.
de la Peña, Empty Pleasures.
de Silva, In Memory’s Kitchen.
Levenstein, Paradox of Plenty.
McFeeley, Can She Bake a Cherry Pie?
Mendelson, Stand Facing the Stove.
Rosenblum, Olives.
Shapiro, Perfection Salad.
Zweiniger-Bargielowska, Food and War.
Culinary Activity
Experiment: Is Fast Food Really So Fast? A Hamburger Race
Find a partner to challenge in this race. Each of you should have 10 dollars
and your own separate cars. Start the timer. Competitor one will go to the
239
Lecture 33: World War II and the Advent of Fast Food
closest fast-food outlet and come back with as many hamburgers as can be
bought with 10 dollars. Competitor two will go to the nearest grocery store
and will purchase ground beef, buns, ketchup, lettuce, and pickles. Then,
come home and cook hamburgers as quickly as possible, either inside in
a pan or outdoors on a grill. This is partly a competition to see which is
faster, but also compare how many hamburgers you could get for 10 dollars.
Compare the taste of the hamburgers, too. Which was the better option?
Which involved more time, labor, and forethought? Which ultimately “cost”
more, not merely in terms of money, but also in expenditure of labor? If the
competition was fairly close, why do people rely so much on fast food? Is it
merely good advertising and the idea of convenience?
240
Counterculture—From Hippies to Foodies
Lecture 34
I
n this lecture, you will learn about the various individuals and movements
in the latter half of the 20th century that challenged the hegemony of the
modern industrial food system from a wide variety of angles, including
gastronomic, ethical, and environmental. You will also learn about farmers’
markets, sustainable agriculture, rescuing traditional foods and production
methods, and what is generally known as health food. The focus will be on
the 1960s and 1970s and the odd and ironic way these movements actually
became part of the industrial food system—when they became a marketing
angle for new products.
The Second Health-Food Movement
 Much like the health-food movement of the early 19th century,
there was a second health-food movement in the 1960s and 1970s,
except this one did not originate among wealthy people visiting
fashionable spas and sanatoriums, but was really one facet of a
wider counterculture rebellion and went hand in hand with hippies,
free love, psychedelic music, and antiwar protests. They were
basically saying that everything about the way most Americans live
is wrong—including and especially their food—and it often had a
political angle as well.

During this time, many people believed that what most Americans
ate was unhealthy; that farming practices polluted the Earth;
and that technologically enhanced, mass-produced food was
aesthetically bankrupt. They looked to simpler foods, often ones
that didn’t exploit animals, and also sought to eat local foods
grown sustainably, in season, and prepared by human hands and
shared—sometimes communally. They also believed in the value of
spending time preparing food for other people.

The environmental concern specifically went mainstream in 1962
with the publication of Rachel Carson’s Silent Spring, which made
241
Lecture 34: Counterculture—From Hippies to Foodies
people realize that a shiny red apple, simply because it looks good,
doesn’t necessarily mean it’s good for you. In her book, Carson
promoted the idea of returning to simpler ways of farming more in
harmony with nature rather than torturing it to get what we want.
242

This message resonated nicely with the health-food movement that
wanted to turn back the clock and return to older, simpler, and what
they thought were healthier ways of life—by growing and eating
“natural” foods, which meant food grown without chemical fertilizers
or pesticides, without artificial preservatives or additives, without
artificial coloring, and with the minimum of processing possible.

Macrobiotic diets, which involve eating only whole foods and
a progressive narrowing of foods until you finally live mostly on
brown rice, became trendy. Veganism, or using no animal products
whatsoever because such products exploit animals for the use of
man, was also something new.

Another important book, Diet for a Small Planet by Frances
Moore Lappé, made essentially the same argument that the ancient
Roman Plutarch made but in more explicit terms: If the population
continues to grow, which of course it does, then eating meat is a
remarkably inefficient way of using land because you need several
acres to support a cow, and that same land planted with grains
provides many more calories. More people can be fed on a vegetable
diet, which the author saw as a solution to feeding poverty-stricken
people around the globe.

Perhaps coincidentally, the health-food movement also looked to
time-tested ancient eating practices of non-European peoples. The
strange and ironic thing about health food is that people outside the
very small counterculture became interested in it, and people began
to shop at health-food stores. They did so for essentially the same
reasons as the hippies: They were afraid of processed, artificial foods.

Unfortunately, where there’s money to be made, someone will move
in with a big scheme and invest a lot of money, so the major food
manufacturers started selling their own (mass-produced) brands of
pita bread, tofu, pure peanut butter, yogurt, and whole wheat bread.
In other words, these foods went mainstream.

Even the health-food stores changed. Instead of selling fresh
produce and locally raised foods, things increasingly came in
packages. Essentially, they became scarcely different than foodindustry products, except that these were usually lower in fat, used
only natural ingredients, or were specifically vegetarian. However,
they were still highly processed and corporately controlled. As
a result, the entire social consciousness side of the health-food
movement fell by the wayside.
A New Interest in Cooking
 Just as the counterculture was promoting its own ideal way of
eating, at the same time, there grew in this country a vibrant new
interest in cooking. At first, it was French cooking that enthralled
middle-class Americans—not the sort of fancy haute cuisine that
was in the great restaurant kitchens of the 19th century but, rather,
a more simple and rustic French cuisine based on the countryside.

In her first cookbook, Mastering the Art of French Cooking, and
then on TV from the 1960s until her death in 2004, Julia Child taught
people basic cooking techniques that gave them the confidence to
prepare good, honest meals from scratch. It was French food, but
definitely not haute cuisine. There were also cooking magazines
like Gourmet and Bon Appétit.

Cooking and entertaining became something sophisticated, a
leisure activity, and also something to enjoy rather than household
drudgery. The interest in cooking from scratch was a direct affront
to mass-produced food. There was also a renewed interest in eating
out, at every level of the price spectrum.

Along with a flood of cookbooks and television shows hitting the
market, in the 1970s especially, there was a new interest in “ethnic”
cuisines. American people on the whole began cooking things
243
Lecture 34: Counterculture—From Hippies to Foodies
and trying things that they would never have dreamed of eating
in previous decades. All sorts of exotic new cuisines—including
Indian, Japanese, Sichuan, Moroccan, and Thai—came into fashion.
244

For the most part, these cuisines require fresh ingredients, so instead
of using premade curry powders or chili powders, people wanted
to be more authentic by making real garam masala or using fresh
chilis. In other words, in an effort to be authentic and prepare these
dishes as close as possible to the way they are made in restaurants
or abroad, people were forced to discover new, fresh ingredients
like cilantro, kaffir lime leaves, plantains, and guava.

Related to these developments was a campaign for real beer and
the emergence of microbreweries. People came to realize that the
mass-produced beer was really lacking in character and bore little
relation to those that began to be imported from Europe, which had
deep, malty notes; bracing hops; yeasty notes; and real local flavor.
Microbreweries started popping up, and people began to realize the
subtle differences among types of beer and ale.

All of that began to change when people saw huge profits looming
on the horizon. Just as with the health-food movement, some
companies sold out completely, either by changing their product
so that it could be mass produced or by renting out space in larger
breweries to increase scale. Even worse than selling out was that
the huge brewers started selling their own cheap imitations, usually
just their regular beer colored with brown syrup.

A parallel development, analogous to what happened with beer,
also took off in the world of cheese making. In reaction to massproduced, rubbery, “pasteurized processed cheese food,” a few
small dairies started experimenting with new kinds of cheese.
They started with goat cheese because it’s very easy to make and
inexpensive to keep goats. Soon, all sorts of other cheese makers
started popping up, making excellent blue cheeses as well as
aged cheddars.

Unfortunately, the big companies and even state dairy boards
that had a lot of money were able to capitalize on this interest.
Nationwide, they lobbied to have the “real” sticker on anything
that qualifies as cheese. The California Association launched an
enormous campaign to compete with the Wisconsin giants. These
cooperatives essentially force their suppliers to contribute to
their advertising schemes. The cheese campaign labels ultimately
confuse consumers so that they can’t distinguish artisanal from
industrial, so the former hold a tiny fraction of the market, are still
expensive luxury items, and are hard to find.
© Jupiterimages/Creatas/Thinkstock.
Organic Food and Farmers’ Markets
 The only labeling we have that passed legislation after a long, bitter
battle is for organic produce. The difficulty with legislation was in
defining exactly what “organic” means. Until recently, there was
no legal definition, and you were not allowed to put it on a label,
but even the laws that have been passed are confusing. “Organic”
Fruits and vegetables that are certifiably organic do not contain chemically
formulated fertilizers, growth stimulants, antibiotics, or pesticides.
245
Lecture 34: Counterculture—From Hippies to Foodies
has become just another way to market products—a way to sell
more food.

Parallel to these developments is a movement called Slow Food,
founded in 1989 by an Italian, Carlo Petrini, in reaction to the
opening of a McDonald’s at the foot of the Spanish steps in Rome.
It began largely as a gastronomic movement—to get people to slow
down and enjoy the pleasures of the table in good company and
also to keep alive regional traditions in the face of globalization.
More recently, they have begun to promote fair trade practices and
environmental stewardship.

Another very encouraging development is the growth of farmers’
markets, which not only offer human contact with producers, but
also put the profits directly in the hands of the person growing the
food. This is the only way small farmers will survive and the only
way consumers will have some control over what they buy.

In recent years, what is known as locavorism—the idea that you
should source food only within a certain mile radius (to cut down
on transport costs and get fresher food)—is growing. Going local
would mean returning to greater seasonality, and it might mean
eating less of some kinds of food that won’t grow in certain regions,
including coffee, chocolate, and citrus. It would definitely cause
changes in our diets, probably for the better in the long run.
Suggested Reading
Belasco, Appetite for Change.
Innes, Dinner Roles.
Innes, Kitchen Culture.
Johnston, Foodies.
Kamp, United States of Arugula.
Kaufman, Short History of the American Stomach.
246
Oddy, From Plain Fare to Fusion Food.
Teuteberg, European Food History.
Culinary Activity
The 1960s and 1970s witnessed a range of new ingredients, many of which
derived from Asian cuisines but were incorporated in interesting, new ways
in conventional American cuisine in the interest of health, vegetarianism,
or simply novelty. The following is one worth keeping and is in line with
counterculture values. It will taste better if eaten wearing sandals and a tiedyed t-shirt—and listening to the Grateful Dead.
Vegetarian Tofu Chili
Take one block of extra-firm tofu, and crumble it up with your fingers,
squeezing out any extra moisture. Heat a frying pan with a few tablespoons
of olive oil, and fry the crumbled tofu on low temperature, stirring often,
until lightly browned and crispy. Add to this a finely chopped onion, finely
chopped green and red bell peppers, and a chopped serrano chili pepper.
Season with salt, cumin, and oregano. Continue frying until vegetables are
slightly browned and the spices are fragrant. Next, add some ground chili
powder or paprika. To this, add some vegetable stock, either canned or made
from carrot peelings, onions, celery leaves, and other vegetable scraps. Also
add some chopped tomatoes. Continue cooking until the tomatoes have
fallen apart and the chili has thickened. Serve with brown rice.
247
Science of New Dishes and New Organisms
Lecture 35
I
Lecture 35: Science of New Dishes and New Organisms
n the 20th century, new forms of energy and food science completely
transformed the food most people ate on a daily basis, but it was not
until the latter part of the century that science was systematically applied
to gastronomy at the level of fine dining. Many of the techniques were
borrowed from the food industry and were actually quite common. They had
not, however, been applied to creating new foods that no one had ever seen
before. This lecture focuses on the scientific side of our food supply—not
only genetically modified food, but also other technologies, including those
that have influenced gastronomy.
Molecular Gastronomy and Scientifically Engineered Food
 In the beginning of the 20th century, attempts to apply science to
fine dining were largely pathetic. The whole idea was to embrace
the era of the machine, speed, and violence, but in the end, most
attempts to do this were laughably silly. It was not until toward the
end of the century that science was successfully applied to creating
new and actually edible foods at the level of fine dining.
248

Ordinary food has been scientifically engineered for the past
century. Manufacturers are not required to label foods that are
genetically modified, so we are largely unaware of the extent to
which our food supply has been changed. The U.S. government has
decided that it would be better for us not to know, lest out of fear we
reject these foods, as has happened in Europe.

Genetically modified food is not in and of itself anything new.
Humans have been altering the genes of plants through artificial
selection for the past 10,000 years. Instead of nature calling the
shots—through natural selection or sexual selection, allowing
those adaptations that are best suited for a given environment to
survive—we have been selecting them to get what we want.
© iStockphoto/Thinkstock.
Genetically modified foods of the future might be packed with nutritional
content—and taste great.

We have never been able to create new species; only nature has
been able to do that over millions of years. The earliest forms of
GMOs, or genetically modified organisms, were created in 1973
and involved taking a tiny gene, cutting off of a piece of DNA,
and then slicing it onto a tiny chromosome (plasmid). Because this
involves combining genes from one creature with another, it was
called recombinant DNA.

Today, there are two main ways to genetically modify organisms.
One method involves taking an isolated gene plucked off the DNA
that is known to confer some desirable trait, loading it in a gun, and
shooting it into a cell—hoping the gene hits the right spot, becomes
lodged in the cell, and changes the growing organism so that it
expresses whatever the desirable trait may be.

The other technology uses a vector, such as a bacteria or virus
(often a pathogen), which invades the cell on its own and introduces
249
Lecture 35: Science of New Dishes and New Organisms
the new gene. It usually takes hundreds of trials to get one that
successfully expresses the new gene. These modified organisms
are generally unstable because in order to get the cell to accept
the foreign gene, the organism’s natural defenses have to be
disarmed. That means that when this organism is placed in nature,
it has an unusual ability to spontaneously mate with other kinds of
foreign genes, which results in all sorts of new creatures that are
created accidentally.
250

This is especially dangerous with genetically modified bacteria
because these extremely random mutants are often resistant to
antibiotics, and some scientists are speculating that the rise in
antibiotic-resistant strains of diseases is directly related to random
couplings of GMOs. Moreover, these kinds of mutations are very
different from selective breeding, which looked for similar kinds of
attributes but was never able to use genes from other species.

The only possible problem with cross-species exchange of genetic
material is that we can often identify what a certain gene will
do—make eyes green, cause pest resistance, increase height—but
our understanding at this stage is still limited, and we don’t fully
understand all of the things any one gene does. With a new gene,
we never really know what secondary, unexpected characteristics
that organism may express.

We do know, for example, that the pollen of genetically modified
food can drift over into other non–genetically modified fields and
spontaneously fertilize regular plants, so there are also combinations
of genes that we have no control over and can’t test for rigorously
in a lab—even apart from the fact that the farmer growing the
conventional crop may get all sorts of weird, unexpected hybrids.

Moreover, because the modified organisms are patented, if some
accidentally spill on the road and are growing in a farmer’s plot,
even if the farmer knows nothing about it, he or she can be sued by
the company that owns the patent. These patents began to be issued
in the 1980s so that certain companies had a virtual monopoly
on their development. Although the plants are legally considered
virtually equivalent to conventional crops and therefore require no
testing, they can nonetheless be patented.

By using these genetically modified plants, farmers could actually
use less pesticides and help the environment. Farmers were
generally enthusiastic about these new crops because they don’t
have to spend so much money spraying, and their production costs
went down dramatically. Of course, they had to buy the seeds from
the manufacturers, but they benefited immensely.

Another consideration is that if all of these genetically modified
crops do well and increase yields even more, that might have an
unforeseen impact on the soil—perhaps completely depleting
its nutrients, which would demand more chemical fertilizers and
irrigation. Just the same way that monocultures disrupt the natural
ecosystem, we have no idea how these new organisms might affect
insects, birds, animals, and humans as part of that ecosystem.

Defenders of genetically modified foods say that if the population
continues to rise, we are going to have to find ways to increase the
food supply to meet the demand, so they are making a humanitarian
claim that only with genetically modified foods will we be able to
feed poor nations in the future. Assuming that the world population
continues to rise, it means that we will have to continually find
new ways to increase the food supply, and short of growing food
in space or harvesting krill from the ocean floor, our resources are
necessarily limited.

Another factor is that the new technologies will have to be
purchased from the advanced nations or, more specifically, from
a few corporations that hold the patents. Diversifying agriculture
around the world might be a much better way to supply necessary
nutrients, and it also means that one blight wouldn’t wipe out the
single crop being grown everywhere.
251

So far, genetically modified foods don’t seem to offer the consumer
any practical benefits. Most of the applications have been geared
toward making profit for the food industry. For the most part,
genetically modified crops don’t increase yields and have not
significantly cut down the use of pesticides.
Lecture 35: Science of New Dishes and New Organisms
Other Food Technologies
 Another technology that has garnered a lot of controversy in recent
decades has been cloning. Its application for food would be to breed
an optimal animal or plant and then simply clone it many times
without the necessary combination of genes in sexual reproduction
that would alter those desirable traits.
252

The FDA approved this practice in 2006, and cloned beef, for
example, requires no special labeling. Like GMOs, this is nothing
new. We have been cloning plants for thousands of years; a graft or
rooting a cutting is a clone. However, it’s much more complicated
with animals, like Dolly, the first sheep that was cloned in 1996
in Scotland.

Cloning is not yet commercially viable, but it might be some day.
The main problem in that cloning for food is like monoculture—if
one disease kills one organism, then it will probably kill them all.
Genetic diversity is nature’s insurance policy, but cloned organisms
are very precarious.

Recently, there have been experiments to grow meat in a test tube.
The idea is if we can get cells to divide and reproduce in a favorable
medium, we can get a five-ounce piece of meat to grow to seven
ounces. That would reduce the overall number of cattle grown, and
the pressures they put on the environment, and increase the food
supply. At present, it is still completely economically unfeasible,
and it is uncertain what consumers will think of it—but it does
remain a possibility. Ethically, it seems to make a lot of sense if
you’re thinking about animal welfare.

Another technology that is now being used widely is hydroponic
farming. Instead of using soil, plants are set into a medium and
fed all the nutrients they need, and water is recycled. Moreover,
you don’t have to worry about insects or pests if plants are grown
indoors in sealed greenhouses or even underground with artificial
light. The problem, at least so far, is that foods like hydroponic
tomatoes don’t taste like anything, so soil might be essential
to flavor.

The most potentially promising food technologies of recent years
are called neutraceuticals, foods that act pharmaceutically to fight
off cancer, reduce weight, or even prevent diseases. For the most
part, these have just been marketing ploys: ways to sell old foods
in new ways, or incorporate them into processed foods. With
increased knowledge of human health, we will hopefully be able
to identify specifically what each individual should eat for optimal
health rather than offering broad and fairly vague guidelines.
Suggested Reading
McGee, On Food and Cooking.
Oddy, From Plain Fare to Fusion Food.
Pollan, The Botany of Desire.
Smith, American Tuna.
Smith, Food Science.
Smith, Nutrition in Britain.
This, Molecular Gastronomy.
Vega, et al., The Kitchen as Laboratory.
Vileisis, Kitchen Literacy.
253
Culinary Activity
Lecture 35: Science of New Dishes and New Organisms
The microwave oven is perhaps the most important new cooking technology
of the late 20th century. Many people contend that you can’t cook in a
microwave—that it is essentially just for defrosting, cooking popcorn, and
making ready-made meals. The latter alone has assured the microwave a
permanent place in the modern kitchen. However, there are a few foods that
actually cook well in the microwave, especially vegetables. The following is
not only quick and easy, but also really good.
Eggplant Casserole
Peel two large eggplants, and cut them into very thin slices. Pour a little olive
oil into the bottom of the casserole, and season with a little salt, oregano, and
basil. An excellent alternative is za’atar, a Middle Eastern spice mix with
wild thyme, sumac, and sesame seeds. Lay on a layer of eggplant slices,
season the same way, and add a drizzle of olive oil. Continue until the
casserole is full. You can also add a little tomato sauce between each layer.
Cover and microwave for 10 minutes or until softened. Remove the cover
and pour off any excess accumulated liquid, and microwave again for five
more minutes. Serve.
254
The Past as Prologue?
Lecture 36
T
his lecture will make some long-term predictions about food, where it
comes from, who grows and processes it, how it gets to us, what we
do with it, and how and why we eat what we do. Most importantly,
it will suggest some ways that knowledge gained in this course might be
used to enhance our appreciation of food—not only by knowing how we
got to this point, but also by using the lessons learned to shape the future.
Hopefully, this lecture will encourage you to learn more about the foods that
have been discussed throughout the course and then use those as starting
points for further exploration.
Food Trends of the Future
 Obviously, we have become a culture that is fairly obsessed with
food, but it is not simply a matter of people in general knowing
more about food or even enjoying it more. Our relationship to
what we eat, how we eat it, and with whom have changed in many
surprising ways.

In terms of food writing, the Internet has had a major influence
on the availability of recipes. Until recently, cookbook writers
were afraid that the ubiquitous availability of recipes online
would put them out of business. Online information is faster, more
interactive—with more choices and ratings—and potentially better
able to cater to specialized tastes.

Strangely, the profusion of online information has given the
authority, the connoisseur, even greater authority because even
though it seems like we have more information, getting reliable
information has become even more difficult. The last couple of
decades have seen a profusion of high-quality food reference works
written by authorities.
255
Lecture 36: The Past as Prologue?
256

Information about food will ultimately be easier to access, with
workable recipes for a variety of tastes and dietary preferences
provided by trusted authorities. Much the same is true of cookbook
publishing. Despite the proliferation of celebrity chef cookbooks, there
is also a greater number of excellent specialized cookbooks as well as
basic instructional texts. Cookbooks have not and will not go away, if
only because people still need authorities and decent instruction.

The general trend of food on television is no longer the cook
standing at the stove. Competitions and reality shows have largely
replaced purely instructional cooking shows, and web-based
instruction and specialized apps will probably eventually replace
the traditional formats.

There are other interesting gastronomic trends afoot. In the past
few years, with the downturn of the economy, food has been
getting a lot simpler. Comfort food is featured in magazines more
often. Restaurants are becoming more casual and less expensive,
or they are opening downscale bistros or even food trucks. Lavish
extravagance and exotic rarities have given way to local, fresh,
simple, homey cooking. This turn to simplicity is not just a current
phenomenon, but it has happened many times in history.

This new way of cooking is a new kind of sophistication because
it is informed by ethical or environmental concerns or sometimes
health. It serves as yet another way to “distinguish” oneself. In
other words, if everyone can afford to eat at the latest molecular
gastronomy restaurant, it just isn’t that impressive any more, but if
you can source your local, free-range heirloom pig and make homecured bacon from it, that gives you a kind of savoir faire.

The general trend in the past few decades, or even the past century,
for home cooking has been toward convenience food—what the
industry calls value-added food. Raw ingredients simply do not
make as much profit as processed ones, so industry experts are
continually finding ways to make life easier by coming up with
products that require less and less home preparation.

The result has been a general loss of basic cooking skills. Of course,
there are always people out there who like to cook, and interestingly,
men are doing a bigger share of the cooking at home than in the
past—but people cook less in general. They also eat out more,
especially at casual dining chains, and takeout is also on the rise.

Of equal importance is that prefabricated food tends to be high
in salt, sugar, and fat; the better it tastes, the more people buy, so
it also contains so-called natural and artificial flavors. These are
concentrated chemical additives (they are chemicals regardless
of where they’re sourced) that are designed to hit quickly with a
burst and then fade quickly so that we’re encouraged to eat more.
Moreover, they make our palates jaded.

If tax dollars went to subsidizing fruits and vegetables instead of
corn and soy (which go into processed foods), there would be a
period of displacement as farmers switched from corn to broccoli,
and that transition could certainly be supported, but think of the
result: more fresh, local vegetables and less oversupply of crops we
don’t need so much of.
The Future of Agriculture
 In the past century, the small family farm has been gradually
disappearing, as huge industrial farms—corn, soy, beef, chicken,
and tuna farms—producing food have become very big businesses.
Farms have become huge and owned by fewer and fewer people.

Not only is the cost of land very high—especially as cities sprawl
into the countryside—on top of the cost of equipment, seeds
or stock, and fertilizers and pesticides, but we have also seen
manufacturing jobs and even service jobs exported. The long-term
exporting of jobs is a trend that presumably will not soon reverse.

It will probably happen to food as well. As people seek cheaper labor
and land, our food supply will be largely imported. The so-called
developing world is poised to start exporting basic foods that they
will almost certainly be able to produce more cheaply than we can.
257
Lecture 36: The Past as Prologue?
258
Farming, where it survives, will
provide the heirloom vegetables and
fruits; perhaps organic, grass-fed
beef; farmstead cheeses; wine and
handcrafted beer; and all the other
luxury items that we like to source
locally and seasonally. Strangely,
small-scale farming will probably see
a revival. It will no longer involve
cheap, bulk food because that will
probably be produced elsewhere.

The farmers who remain in the United
States will increasingly be college- Although it might change,
agriculture is not likely to
educated, upwardly mobile people disappear in the future.
who find they can’t find good-paying
jobs and don’t want to deal with long commutes. We are already
seeing a burgeoning back to the land movement, but it will probably
grow apace as more and more people turn away from the serviceoriented economy.

The farmers’ market trend will assumedly continue to increase, but
we will still need to buy other foods beyond produce. In general,
supermarkets have replaced small grocers and butchers. More
recently, there are large stores that sell in bulk or other stores that
carry food so that you can do all of your shopping in one place—
not only Walmart, but Target also carries food.

Despite this, supermarkets, especially in crowded areas, will
someday probably become obsolete. When it takes hours to get
through traffic, fight crowds, or you have to take a bus because
there is no supermarket nearby, it will become too much of a hassle
if you live in certain cities. Just as bookstores have been largely
replaced by Amazon and other online retailers, most of our regular
food shopping will probably also happen online.
© George Doyle/Stockbyte/Thinkstock.

The Latest Food Developments
 Eating out is changing dramatically—not only in new types of
restaurants and new modes of home delivery, but also in the
proliferation of food trucks. These are not quite the traditional
kind of mobile lunch wagon; they often involve very sophisticated,
fusion, or artisan specialty foods. They are an excellent option
because the setup is much cheaper than a brick-and-mortar
establishment. Their real novelty, however, is the sophisticated
way they use social media to advertize and announce their location
through tweets.

The same technology also supports the pop-up food event, a kind
of spontaneous commando cooking. There is also the underground
supper club, which is yet another way chefs and restaurateurs are
getting around the myriad food regulations and high costs. Supper
clubs meet in private houses and are unadvertised, and guests make
a voluntary donation rather than pay a bill. There is a set menu, and
you basically eat whatever the chef decides to make.

All of these developments suggest that we are further stratifying
into numerous more nuanced ways of eating and more varied dietary
niches, and the market is supplying people with exactly what they
want. Along with this increase in choice, typical food will probably
become increasingly simplified and easy to eat—preferably by
hand. Forks and knives will probably disappear because they are
inconvenient. In this respect, although for completely different
reasons, we might be going back to the pre-Renaissance.

Even plates will become superfluous, because we will get used to
eating things directly from the package, which will also be edible so
as to cut down on waste. The flavors will become less complicated
and easy to chew. Our aversion to eating recognizable animals will
probably increase, meaning that foods will be disguised in other
forms. Food will also come in more fun and interesting shapes and
colors—another echo of medieval taste.
259

Intrepid souls will still venture into the kitchen, especially on
holidays or special occasions, but the kitchen as we know it may
become increasingly obsolete, just as the burning hearth or the
coal stove did. Maybe smart kitchens will take stock of our fridge
contents, offer recipes, and even cook food for us.

Perhaps the microwave will be the cooking implement of choice,
but given our track record through history, we probably will find
new fuel sources and harness them in ways that will once again
transform cooking technology: perhaps in the form of more efficient
solar ovens or by harnessing the power of thermal vents to heat our
stoves. Food will be preserved much more efficiently as well, so
maybe we’ll do away with refrigerators altogether—or change how
they are used.
Suggested Reading
Albala, Food Cultures of the World.
Belasco, Meals to Come.
Pollan, The Omnivore’s Dilemma.
Schlosser, Fast Food Nation.
Lecture 36: The Past as Prologue?
Warde, Consumption.
Warman, Corn and Capitalism.
Culinary Activity
Take a lesson you learned from this course and apply it to the preparation of a
meal—whether using a new ingredient, a technique you’ve never tried, a recipe
from some place we mentioned, or even a ritual we discussed. Wendell Berry
said that knowing where your food comes from and even the history of a food
increases your awareness and appreciation of the food; notice whether that’s
the case with the dish you try. Reflect not only on foods, unfamiliar as well as
familiar, but also on your own habits and customs. How has the material in this
course affected—and how might it further affect—the way you eat?
260
Bibliography
General Surveys
There are several good general histories of food:
Civitello, Linda. Cuisine and Culture. Hoboken, NJ: Wiley, 2011. Good
introductory overview; geared more toward beginning students.
Fernández-Armesto, Felipe. Food: A History. Oxford: Macmillan, 2001.
Pithy, entertaining, and solid account of the major revolutionary shifts in
food since prehistoric times.
Flandrin, Jean-Louis, and Massimo Montanari. Food: A Culinary History.
Albert Sonnenfeld, tr. New York: Columbia University Press, 1999. Massive
account of the history of cuisine worth reading, though the chapters are
somewhat uneven, with a Eurocentric bias.
Freedman, Paul, ed. Food: The History of Taste. Berkeley: University of
California Press, 2007. Excellent classroom-style survey of food history,
written by active food historians incorporating the latest scholarship. Follows
the same basic structure as this course.
Parasecoli, Fabio, and Peter Scholliers, general eds. A Cultural History of
Food. 6 vols. London: Berg, 2012. A huge collection on food history from
antiquity to the modern age; each volume edited by a specialist with essays
contributed by leaders in the field. Relevant to all lectures.
Tannahill, Reay. Food in History. New York: Crown Publishers, 1998. The
first solid overview on food history; still a good narrative and very useful,
though the details have been largely superseded.
261
Toussaint-Samat, Maguelonne. History of Food. Oxford: Basil Blackwell,
1992. Entertaining, fun read that covers a vast amount of material, but also
contains a lot of folklore, mistakes, and unsupported assertions.
Though not as comprehensive, there are also relatively broad histories
focused on cooking and dining that may be of interest, such as:
Strong, Roy. Feast: A History of Grand Eating. London: Jonathan Cape,
2002. An art historian turns his attention to food with marvelous results.
Symonds, Michael. History of Cooks and Cooking. Urbana: University of
Illinois Press, 2000. Broad history of the profession told with grace. Relevant
for all lectures.
General Reference Works
Several food reference works are also potentially worth having on hand
because they are valuable across many topics:
Adamson, Melitta, and Francine Segan, eds. Entertaining: From Ancient
Rome to the Superbowl. 2 vols. Westport, CT: Greenwood, 2008. A large
encyclopedic overview of various forms of entertaining, formal and
otherwise, in 120 entries. Relevant from Lecture 9 onward.
Albala, Ken. Food Cultures of the World Encyclopedia. 4 vols. Santa
Barbara: Greenwood, 2011. Huge encyclopedia covering every place on
Earth, discussing the history, cooking, and ideas about food, with sections of
each chapter that point to the future.
Bibliography
Davidson, Alan. The Oxford Companion to Food. Oxford: Oxford University
Press, 1999. Massive, erudite, opinionated, and charming. A classic reference
work decades in the making; requisite on every food lover’s shelf.
Katz, Solomon H., ed. Encyclopedia of Food and Culture. New York:
Charles Scribner’s Sons, 2003. An invaluable reference work that focuses
on the anthropological and sociological dimensions of eating, but with much
useful historical material as well.
262
Kiple, Kenneth, and Coneé Ornelas, eds. The Cambridge World History
of Food. Cambridge, MA: Cambridge University Press, 2000. A major
reference work whose focus is more on ingredients and nutrition rather than
foodways per se.
Palmatier, Robert Allen. Food: A Dictionary of Literal and Nonliteral
Terms. Westport, CT: Greenwood, CT, 2000. Good reference work for
food terminology.
Smith, Andrew F. Oxford Encyclopedia of Food and Drink in America.
Oxford University Press, 2004. An invaluable reference work to accompany
Lectures 25–35.
Suggested Readings and Primary Sources
The following bibliography contains only works in English or translated
into English, including any primary or secondary sources mentioned in the
course. While not exhaustive, it does offer a good view of the depth and range
of works in food history published in the past few decades. For example,
there are now countless histories of individual foods, such as Bobrow-Strain
on white bread, Coe and Coe on chocolate, David on ice cream, Fussell’s
pathbreaking The Story of Corn from 1992, and Salaman’s 1949 history of the
potato. There have also been a slew of small books (not in this bibliography)
from Reaktion Press in their Edible series. Several publishers have dedicated
food series that issue new titles every year, including Columbia University
Press, University of California Press, Berg, Greenwood, AltaMira, as well as
many titles from Oxford University Press and Routledge.
Achaya, K. T. A Historical Dictionary of Indian Food. New York: Oxford
University Press, 2002. A quick reference source written by the expert on
Indian cuisine.
Adamson, Melitta, and Francine Segan, eds. Entertaining: From Ancient
Rome to the Superbowl, 2 vols. Westport, CT: Greenwood, 2008. A large
encyclopedic overview of various forms of entertaining, formal and
otherwise, in 120 entries. Relevant for Lecture 9 and onward.
263
Adamson, Melitta. Food in Medieval Times. Westport, CT: Greenwood,
2004. A broad survey of food production, consumption, and ideas about food
in Europe in the Middle Ages.
———. Regional Cuisines of Medieval Europe. New York: Routledge,
2002. A collection of essays exploring lesser-known regions of Europe and
their cooking in the Middle Ages.
Albala, Ken. The Banquet: Dining in the Great Courts of Late Renaissance
Europe. Urbana and Chicago: University of Illinois Press, 2007. A culinary
history of elite dining in the 16th and 17th centuries.
———. Beans: A History. Oxford: Berg, 2007. A social history of beans
across the globe, from antiquity to the present.
———. Cooking in Europe, 1250–1650. Westport, CT: Greenwood 2006.
Recipes in translation from across Europe, with practical directions for
cooking them today.
———. Eating Right in the Renaissance. Berkeley, CA: University of
California Press, 2002. A study of European dietary theory from 1450 to 1650.
———. Food Cultures of the World Encyclopedia. 4 vols. Santa Barbara:
Greenwood, 2011. Huge encyclopedia covering every place on Earth,
discussing the history, cooking, and ideas about food.
Anderson, E. N. Everyone Eats: Understanding Food and Culture. New
York: New York University Press, 2005. An excellent introduction to the
anthropology of food, a sister discipline to history.
Bibliography
———. The Food of China. New Haven, CT, and London: Yale University
Press, 1988. The classic account of the history of food in China.
Anthimus. De Observatione Ciborum (“On the Observance of Foods”).
Mark Grant, tr. Totnes, Devon, England: Prospect, 1996. A Greek physician
in the 6th century is sent among the Franks and tells them how to eat.
264
Archestratus. The Life of Luxury. John Wilkins and Shaun Hill, tr. Totnes,
Devon, England: Prospect Books, 1994. The oldest cookbook in the Western
tradition, surviving fragments as preserved in Athenaeus.
Arndt, Alice. Culinary Biographies. Austin, TX: Yes Press, 2006. A reference
work detailing the lives of the greatest chefs through history.
Athenaeus. Deipnosophists. Charles Burton Gulick, tr. Cambridge, MA:
Harvard University Press, 2011. The first food history in the Western
tradition; recounts every single reference to food in ancient literature.
Atkins, Peter J., Peter Lummel, and Derek J. Oddy. Food and the City in
Europe Since 1800. Aldershot: Ashgate, 2007. A collection of essays about
provisioning, infrastructure, and the politics of food supply in the modern era.
Austin, Thomas, ed. Two Fifteenth Century Cookery-Books. London: Oxford
University Press, 2000. These are great medieval English cookbooks that
you will be able to read.
Avakian, Arelen Voski, and Barbara Haber, eds. From Betty Crocker to
Feminist Food Studies: Critical Perspectives on Women and Food. Amherst
& Boston: University of Massachusetts Press, 2005. An important collection
of essays representing the state of food studies and gender.
Beeton, Isabella. Mrs. Beaton’s Book of Household Management. Oxford
University Press, 2000. Massive, comprehensive 19th-century guide all about
running a household, including recipes.
Belasco, Warren, and Phillip Scranton, eds. Food Nations: Selling Taste in
Consumer Society. New York: Routledge, 2000. A collection of essays on the
modern history of food and consumerism.
Belasco, Warren. Appetite for Change: How the Counterculture Took on
the Food Industry, 1966–1988. New York: Pantheon, 1989. By one of the
most preeminent food historians, a classic study of how hippie-era food
went mainstream.
265
———. Meals to Come: A History of the Future of Food. Berkeley:
University of California Press, 2006. A fascinating history of what people
in the past have thought eating would be like in the future. Sometimes they
were remarkably prescient; sometimes very wrong.
Bell, Rudolph A. Holy Anorexia. Chicago: Chicago University Press, 1985.
Makes the argument that cases of self-starvation in the Middle Ages were a
form of anorexia nervosa, similar to the pathology today.
Bennett, Judith M. Ale, Beer, and Brewsters in England: Women’s Work in
a Changing World, 1300–1600. New York: Oxford, 1996. A story of how
professionals, men, and legal restrictions put women’s home brewing out
of business.
Bentley, Amy. Eating for Victory: Food Rationing and the Politics of
Domesticity. Urbana, IL: University of Illinois Press, 1998. As the title
implies, the politics of wartime food supply—a superb study.
Bober, Phyllis Pray. Art, Culture, and Cuisine. Chicago: University of
Chicago Press, 1999. Fine overview of ancient to medieval food from the
perspective of art.
Bobrow-Strain, Aaron. White Bread. Boston: Beacon Press, 2012. A social
history of the most processed of American foods.
Bibliography
Bourdieu, Pierre. Distinction: A Social Critique of the Judgment of Taste.
Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1984. Extremely influential
sociological study of how taste reflects identity; very useful for the history
of food.
Bottéro, Jean. The Oldest Cuisine in the World. Chicago: University of
Chicago Press, 2004. Recipes from ancient Akkadian cuneiform tablets
housed at Yale.
Bower, Anne, ed. Recipes for Reading: Community Cookbooks, Stories,
Histories. Amherst: University of Massachusetts Press, 1992. Collection of
essays about why and how communities record recipes.
266
Braudel, Fernand. Mediterranean and the Mediterranean World in the Age of
Philip II. Siân Reynolds, tr. New York: Harper and Row, 1972. A landmark
in history as well as food history; among the first sweeping accounts of
civilization giving food a major role.
Brears, Peter. Cooking and Dining in Medieval England. Totnes, Devon,
England: Prospect, 2008. A good overview with practical sensibilities drawn
from direct culinary experience.
Brillat-Savarin, Jean-Anthelme. The Physiology of Taste. M. F. K. Fisher,
tr. New York: Knopf, 2009. The book that invented gastronomy in the
Western tradition.
Brothwell, Don, and Patricia Brothwell. Food in Antiquity. Baltimore, MD:
Johns Hopkins, 1998. Surveys the diet of early peoples by ingredient.
Burnett, John. Liquid Pleasures: A Social History of Drinks in Modern
Britain. London: Routledge, 1999. Fine social history of beverages.
———. Plenty and Want: A Social History of Diet in England from 1815 to
the Present Day. London: Nelson, 1979. An early and influential study of
modern British food habits.
Burke, Peter. Popular Culture in Early Modern Europe. 3rd ed. Farnham:
Ashgate, 2009. Remains the standard on popular festivals and entertainments.
Bynum, Caroline W. Holy Feast and Holy Fast: The Religious Significance of
Food to Medieval Women. Berkeley: University of California Press, 1987. A
pioneering study of what medieval women thought about food and self-denial.
Camporesi, Piero. Bread of Dreams. Cambridge, MA: Polity Press, 1989. A
historical study of intoxicants in medieval bread, used as a tool of elites to
subordinate peasants.
Cappatti, Alberto, and Massimo Montanari. Italian Cuisine. New York:
Columbia University Press, 1999. Good overview of Italian food, particularly
the medieval and early modern sections.
267
Carney, Judith A., and Richard Nicholas Rosomoff. In the Shadow of Slavery:
Africa’s Botanical Legacy in the Atlantic World. Berkeley: University of
California Press, 2011. The first work to systematically explain our African
food heritage.
Carney, Judith A. Black Rice: The African Origins of Rice Cultivation in the
Americas. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 2001. Completely
overturns traditional ideas of how rice was introduced to the American South.
Chadwick, Own, ed. Western Asceticism. Philadelphia: Western Press, 1958.
Excellent collection of selections from the classic early sources on fasting,
Cassian, and St. Benedict.
Chang, K. C. Food in Chinese Culture: Anthropological and Historical
Perspectives. New Haven, CT: Yale University Press, 1977. The earliest
study of Chinese food history; remains very important.
Clarkson, Janet. Menus from History. Westport, CT: Greenwood, 2009.
Massive collection of historical menus with entertaining commentary.
Clarkson, Leslie A., and E. Margaret Crawford. Feast and Famine: A History
of Food and Nutrition in Ireland, 1500–1920. Oxford: Oxford University
Press, 2002. Focused, specialized study of food in Ireland—especially the
potato blight.
Coe, Sophie D. America’s First Cuisines. Austin: University of Texas, 1994.
Remains the best study of Pre-Columbian foodways.
Bibliography
Coe, Sophie D., and Michael D. Coe. The True History of Chocolate. 2nd
edition. New York: Thames and Hudson, 2007. A classic study on the topic,
first published in 1996.
Collingham, Lizzie M. A Taste of War: World War Two and the Battle for
Food. London: Allen Lane, 2011. A graphic account of the effects of war on
food production and how central food is to waging war.
268
Colquhoun, Kate. Taste: The Story of Britain through Its Cooking. London:
Bloomsbury, 2007. A popular account of British food at it best and
worst moments.
Cooper, John. Eat and Be Satisfied: A Social History of Jewish Food.
Northvale, NJ: Jason Aronson, 1993. Balanced account of Jewish food from
biblical times to the present.
Counihan, Carol M. Food in the USA: A Reader. New York: Routledge,
2002. Collection of some of the best essays on American food written in the
past few decades.
Cowan, Brian. The Social Life of Coffee: The Emergence of the British
Coffeehouse. New Haven, CT: Yale University Press, 2007. Explains the role
of coffeehouses as a place of social, political, and economic exchange.
Crosby, Alfred W. The Columbian Exchange: Biological and Cultural
Consequences of 1492. Westport, CT: Greenwood, 1972. Among the most
important books in food history; many minutiae corrected since publication,
but still classic.
———. Ecological Imperialism: The Biological Expansion of Europe,
900–1900. Cambridge, MA: Cambridge University Press, 1986. The lesser
known of Crosby’s work, but an absolutely riveting combination of food and
environmental history.
Cwiertka, Katarzyna. Modern Japanese Cuisine. London: Reaktion, 2006.
Brilliant account of how and why Japanese people eat the way they do today.
Dalby, Andrew. Dangerous Tastes. Berkeley: University of California Press,
2002. History of spices from ancient times.
———. Siren Feasts: A History of Food and Gastronomy in Greece. London:
Routledge, 1996. An excellent overview of ancient Greek food culture.
269
Darby, William Jefferson, Paul Galioungui, and Louis Grivetti. Food: The
Gift of Osiris. London: Academic Press, 1977. Ingredient-by-ingredient
analysis of ancient Egyptian food.
David, Elizabeth. Harvest of the Cold Months. New York: Viking, 1994. A
grand history of ice cream written by a great cookbook author.
Davidson, James N. Courtesans and Fishcakes: The Consuming Passions of
Classical Athens. New York: St. Martin’s Press, 1997. A good introduction
to ancient Greek taste in food and other pleasures.
Dawson, Thomas. The Good Huswifes Jewell. Maggie Black, ed. Lewes,
Sussex: Southover, 1996. Modern edition of a 17th-century cookbook.
De la Peña, Carolyn. Empty Pleasures: The Story of Artificial Sweeteners.
Chapel Hill: University of North Carolina Press, 2010. A historical account
of sugar substitutes in America.
De Silva, Cara, ed. In Memory’s Kitchen: A Legacy from the Women of
Terezín. Northvale, New York: Jason Aronson, 1996. Women’s memories of
food and cooking written in a World War II concentration camp.
Denker, Joel. The World on a Plate. Boulder, CO: Westview, 2003. Good,
popular history of ethnic food in the United States.
Diamond, Jared. Guns, Germs, and Steel. New York: W. W. Norton, 1997.
Extraordinarily important account of how and why Europe conquered the
New World. Food plays a major role.
Bibliography
Diner, Hasia R. Hungering for America: Italian, Irish, and Jewish Foodways
in the Age of Migration. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 2001. A
very useful account of the immigrant experience through food.
Douglas, Mary. Purity and Danger. London: Routledge, 2002. Classic
anthropological account of food fears and taboos, especially relevant for
kosher laws.
270
Drummond, J. C., and Anne Wilbraham. The Englishman’s Food: A History
of Five Centuries of English Diet. London: J. Cape, 1939. Written by a
nutritionist, this is among the earliest food histories, with excellent coverage
of dietary deficiencies in the past.
DuPuis, E. Melanie. Nature’s Perfect Food: How Milk Became America’s
Drink. New York: New York University Press, 2002. The history of milk
consumption in the United States.
Eden, Trudy. The Early American Table. DeKalb: Northern Illinois University
Press, 2008. Excellent overview of U.S. cuisine in the formative years.
Elias, Norbert. The Civilizing Process. Edmund Jephcott, tr. Oxford:
Blackwell, 2000. Groundbreaking sociological study written in the 1930s but
continues to impact food studies. Particularly fascinating on the development
of manners.
Escoffier, Auguste. Memories of My Life. New York: International Thompson
Publishing, 1997. The chef widely considered the master of French haute
cuisine speaks about his own life.
Faas, Patrick. Around the Roman Table. New York: Palgrave, 2003. Amusing
survey of ancient Roman foodways.
Feeley-Harnik, Gillian. The Lord’s Table: Eucharist and Passover in Early
Christianity. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 1981. Account
of customs in early Christianity.
Ferguson, Priscilla Parkhurst. Accounting for Taste: The Triumph of French
Cuisine. Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1984. Excellent account of
how food came to the fore in France and why French food dominated globally.
Ferrières, Madeleine. Sacred Cow, Mad Cow: A History of Food Fears. New
York: Columbia University Press, 2006. Broad overview of various food
fears and taboos since antiquity.
271
Fisher, Carol. The American Cookbook: A History. Jefferson, NC:
McFarland, 2006. The history of U.S. cookbooks from the late 18th century
to the present.
Flandrin, Jean-Louis. Arranging the Meal. Berkeley: University of California
Press, 1997. Study of meal times through history by one of the founders of
the field of food history.
Fletcher, Nicola. Charlemagne’s Tablecloth: A Piquant History of Feasting.
New York: St. Martin’s Press, 2004. Popular history of feasts.
Floyd, Janet, and Laurel Forster. The Recipe Reader: Narratives, Contexts,
Traditions. Aldershot: Ashgate, 2003. Detailed discussion of what cookbooks
can tell us about history.
Forster, Robert, and Orest Ranum, eds. Food and Drink in History: Selections
from the Annales, Économies, Sociétiés, Civilizations. Vol. 5. Elborg Forster
and Patricia Ranum, tr. Baltimore, MD: Johns Hopkins, 1979. Essays from
the journal Annales, among the first serious works to focus on food history.
Francatelli, Charles Elmé. A Plain Cookery Book for the Working Classes.
Whitstable: Pryor Publications, 1993. Reprint of the 1861 cookbook by a
famous chef who served Queen Victoria briefly.
Fraser, Eva D.G., and Andrew Rimas. Empires of Food. New York: Free
Press, 2010. A sweeping history of food production and consumption and
their implications for the present food system.
Bibliography
Freedman, Paul. Out of the East: Spices and the Medieval Imagination. New
Haven, CT: Yale Univerity Press, 2008. The best study on the motivation and
impact of the medieval spice trade on world history.
Freidberg, Suzanne. Fresh: A Perishable History. Cambridge, MA: Harvard
University Press, 2009. Fascinating account of the meaning of the word
“fresh” and the history of provisioning.
272
Fussell, Betty. The Story of Corn. New York: North Point, 1992. One of
the earliest single-subject food histories that became a model for those
that followed.
Gabbaccia, Donna R. We Are What We Eat. Cambridge, MA: Harvard
University Press, 1998. The best study of immigrant foodways in the
United States.
Galen. Galen: On the Properties of Foodstuffs. Owen Powell, tr. Cambridge,
MA: Cambridge University Press, 2003. The ancient authority on medicine
describes ingredients and how they behave in our bodies. Enormously
important for many centuries.
Gentilcore, David. Pomodoro. New York: Columbia University Press, 2010.
Fine history of the tomato in Italy.
Gigante, Denise, ed. Gusto: Essential Writings in Nineteenth-Century
Gastronomy. New York: Routledge, 2005. A compilation of the best
gastronomic writings of the 19th century, such as Brillat-Savarin.
Gigante, Denise. Taste: A Literary History. New Haven, CT: Yale University
Press, 2005. An exploration of the idea of taste, literal and metaphorical,
in literature.
Glanville, Phillipa, and Hilary Young, eds. Elegant Eating. London: V&A
Publications, 2002. Coffee-table book, but quite delightful.
Glasse, Hannah. The Art of Cookery Made Plain and Easy. Bedford, MA:
Applewood, 1997. Reprint of a great 18th-century cookbook.
Gold, Carol. Danish Cookbooks. Seattle: University of Washington Press,
2007. An excellent history of the cookbook in Denmark spanning the 17th
century to the present.
The Good Huswifes Handmaide for the Kitchen. Bristol: Stuart Press, 1992.
A typical Elizabethan cookbook, for a deeper look into material covered
in lecture.
273
Gratzer, Walter. Terrors of the Table: The Curious History of Nutrition.
New York: Oxford University Press, 2005. Explains the origins of modern
nutritional theory.
Greenspoon, et al. Food & Judaism. Omaha: Creighton University Press,
2005. Collection of essays about Jewish foodways.
Grewe, Rudolph, and Constance B. Heiatt, eds. Libellus de Arte Coquinaria.
Tempe: Arizona Center for Medieval and Renaissance Studies, 2001. The
first medieval cookbook; in four Germanic manuscripts, plus translations.
Griffith, R. Marie. Born Again Bodies: Flesh and Spirit in American
Christianity. Berkeley: University of California Press, 2004. A study of how
religious ideas influence diet.
Grimm, Veronika E. From Feasting to Fasting, The Evolution of A Sin:
Attitudes to Food in Late Antiquity. London: Routledge, 1996. An excellent
study of how early Christian attitudes to food developed.
Grocock, Christopher, and Sally Graingers, tr. Apicius. Totnes, Devon,
England: Prospect Books, 2006. The oldest complete cookbook in the West;
a full view of Roman taste, with recipes that can be followed today.
Guerrini, Anita. Obesity and Depression in the Age of Enlightenment.
Norman: University of Oklahoma Press, 2000. A remarkable study of 18thcentury dietary physician George Cheyne and the influence of religion on
his thought.
Bibliography
Haber, Barbara. From Hardtack to Homefries: An Uncommon History of
American Cooks and Meals. New York: The Free Press, 2002. Fine survey of
culinary history of the United States.
Harris, Jessica B. High on the Hog. New York: Bloomsbury, 2011. Excellent
study of African American foodways written by a historian and noted
cookbook author.
274
Harris, Marvin. Cows, Pigs, Wars, and Witches. New York: Vintage, 1974.
The anthropological materialist explanation for Hindu and Jewish food
taboos; largely contested, but did much to draw attention to food history.
Harrison, Brian. Drink and the Victorians: The Temperance Question in
England, 1815–1872. London: Faber, 1971. Temperance has a similar
history in Britain up until Prohibition in the United States; a social history of
the strange love-hate relationship.
Hartog, Adel P. den, ed. Food Technology, Science, and Marketing: European
Diet in the Twentieth Century. East Linton: Tuckwell, 1995. Essays on the
business of food in the past century; out of print, but an important book
about food in 20th-century Europe.
Helstosky, Carol. Garlic and Oil. Oxford: Berg, 2004. A fine study of 20thcentury Italian food and politics.
Hieatt, Constance B., and Sharon Butler, eds. Curye on Inglysch. London:
Oxford University Press, 1985. A collection of medieval English recipes in
the original language.
Hieatt, Constance B., Brenda Hosington, and Sharon Butler. Pleyn Delit.
Toronto: University of Toronto Press, 1996. Among the first popular
collections of medieval recipes, at times haphazardly redacted.
Henisch, Bridget Anne. Fast and Feast. State College: Pennsylvania State
College Press, 1976. Classic study of medieval food restrictions and festivals.
———. The Medieval Cook. Woodbridge: Boydell Press, 2009. Discussion
of the professional duties and lives of cooks.
Hess, Karen, ed. Martha Washington’s Book of Cookery. Owned by Martha,
but actually written a few hundred years before. A remarkably detailed edition.
Higman, B. W. How Food Made History. Maldon, MA: Wiley, 2012.
Explores our relationship to food and the environment from earliest times to
the present.
275
———. Jamaican Food. Kingston: University of the West Indies Press,
2008. Beautiful book about a relatively understudied cuisine.
Hill, Susan E. Eating to Excess: The Meaning of Gluttony and the Fat Body
in the Ancient World. Santa Barbara: Praeger, 2011. Shows how different
ancient attitudes toward fat and gluttony were compared to our own.
Holt, Mack, ed. Alcohol. Oxford: Berg, 2006. Historical essays about the
social role of drinks in history.
Humble, Nicola. Culinary Pleasures: Cookbooks and the Transformation
of British Food. London: Faber and Faber, 2005. A model investigation of
cookbooks and what they reveal about culture and society.
Inness, Sherrie A. Dinner Roles: American Women and Culinary Culture.
Iowa City: University of Iowa Press, 2001. Very useful collection of essays.
Inness, Sherrie A., ed. Kitchen Culture in America. Philadelphia: University
of Pennsylvania Press, 2001. Essay collection about images of women as
consumers in 20th-century ads and other representations.
Ishige, Naomichi. The History and Culture of Japanese Food. New York:
Kegan Paul, 2001. A superb overview by the expert in the field.
Jacobs, Marc, and Peter Schollers, eds. Eating Out in Europe. Oxford: Berg,
2003. A history of the rise of dining options in the last few centuries.
Bibliography
Jeanneret, Michael. A Feast of Words: Banquets and Table Talk in the
Renaissance. Chicago: Chicago University Press, 1991. About food in
Renaissance literature.
Johnston, Josée, and Shyon Bauman. Foodies. New York: Routledge, 2010.
Study of the foodie phenomenon from a communications perspective, but
with valuable historical insights.
Jones, Martin. Feast: Why Humans Share Food. Oxford: Oxford University
Press, 2007. An anthropological perspective on early human food habits.
276
Kamminga, Harmke, and Andrew Cunningham, eds. The Science and
Culture of Nutrition, 1840–1940. Amsterdam and Atlanta: Rodopi, 1995. A
history of early nutritional thought and major breakthroughs.
Kamp, David. The United States of Arugula. New York: Broadway
Books, 2006. Explains how Americans became so obsessed with food. A
popular history.
Kaplan, Steven L. The Bakers of Paris and the Bread Question, 1700–1775.
Durham: Duke University Press, 1996. A focused and exhaustive study of
bread in the 18th century.
Kaufman, Frederick. A Short History of the American Stomach. Orlando:
Harcourt, 2008. Popular, entertaining little book.
Keay, John. The Spice Route: A History. Berkeley: University of California
Press, 2006. A geographical account of what people know about spices and
the routes they traveled.
Kelly, Ian. Cooking for Kings: The Life of Antonin Careme. New York:
Walker, 2003. A history of the greatest chef of the 19th century, with recipes.
Kiple, Kenneth F. A Moveable Feast: Ten Millennia of Food Globalization.
Cambridge, MA: Cambridge University Press, 2007. An encapsulation of
Kiple’s larger encyclopedia; sometimes very insightful, but not updated with
new research.
Koeppel, Dan. Banana: The Fate of the Fruit That Changed the World.
New York: Hudson Street, 2008. A story of the rise and possible fall of the
ubiquitous Cavendish banana and the industry that created it.
Korsmeyer, Carolyn. Making Sense of Taste: Food and Philosophy. Ithaca
and London: Cornell University Press, 1999. Follows the history of what
people thought about the sense of taste; very useful for food history.
Krondl, Michael. The Taste of Conquest. New York: Ballantine, 2007.
Engaging history of spices around the world.
277
Kurlansky, Mark. Cod. New York: Penguin, 1998. Very popular book that
did a great deal to put food history on the map for a broader audience. Much
is based on speculation.
———. Salt. New York: Walker, 2002. Sweeping, massive history of salt in
the human diet.
Laszlo, Pierre. Citrus. Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 2007. Pleasant
and quirky, but largely omits Asia.
Lehmann, Gilly. The British Housewife. Totnes, Devon, England: Prospect
Books, 2002. A study of 18th-century cookbooks in England.
Levenstein, Harvey A. Fear of Food: A History of Why We Worry about
What We Eat. Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 2012. The roots of
modern food fears are traced back to the politics of the early 20th century.
———. Paradox of Plenty: A Social History of Eating in Modern America.
New York: Oxford, 1993. The finest study of food practices in later
U.S. history.
———. Revolution at the Table: The Transformation of the American
Diet. New York: Oxford, 1988. The finest study of food practices in early
U.S. history.
Marinetti, Fillipo. The Futurist Cookbook. An early-20th-century futurist
artist’s recipes; perfectly ridiculous but very amusing.
Bibliography
Markham, Gervase. The English Housewife. Michael R. Best, ed. Early-17thcentury hack’s guide to everything on a landed estate.
Martin, A. Lynn. Alcohol, Violence, and Disorder in Traditional Europe.
Kirksville, MO: Truman State University Press, 2009. Careful and engaging
study of drinking behavior in preindustrial Europe.
May, Robert. The Compleat Cook. Totnes, Devon, England: Prospect Books,
2000. The biggest and most interesting of 17th-century cookbooks in English.
278
McAvoy, Liz Herbert, and Teresa Walters, eds. Consuming Narratives:
Gender and Monstrous Appetites in the Middle Ages and Renaissance.
Chicago: Chicago University Press, 2002. A collection of essays that
considers appetite in relation to gender, politics, race, and nation in the
Middle Ages.
McFeeley, Mary. Can She Bake a Cherry Pie? American Women and the
Kitchen in the Twentieth Century. Amherst: University of Massachusetts
Press, 2001. About the construction of female identity through domesticity
and cooking.
McGee, Harold. On Food and Cooking: The Science and Lore of the Kitchen.
Revised, updated edition. New York: Scribner, 2004 [1984]. Great, classic
text on the science of food, revised and greatly expanded to include more
recent science, newly popular foods, and more cultural tidbits.
McGovern, Patrick. Uncorking the Past. Berkeley: University of California
Press, 2009. Archaeology reveals what people drank in ancient times.
McNeil, Cameron, ed. Chocolate in Mesoamerica. Gainesville: University
Press of Florida, 2006. Remarkably detailed collection of essays.
Mehdawy, Magda, and Amr Hussein. The Pharaoh’s Kitchen. Cairo: The
American University in Cairo Press, 2010. Popular account with recipes.
Mendelson, Ann. Stand Facing the Stove: The Story of the Women Who Gave
America the Joy of Cooking. New York: Henry Holt, 1996. An examination
of the most popular cookbook in 20th-century America and the impact it had.
Mennell, Stephen. All Manners of Food: Eating and Taste in England and
France from the Middle Ages to the Present. Oxford: Basil Blackwell, 1985.
Compares the divergence of taste on both sides of the channel through
detailed examination of cookbooks; a formative work in food history.
Mintz, Sidney W. Sweetness and Power: The Place of Sugar in Modern
History. New York: Viking, 1985. A landmark book in food history, though
279
written by an anthropologist. Explains slavery from the vantage point of the
desire for sugar.
———. Tasting Food, Tasting Freedom. Boston: Beacon, 1996. A book
about U.S. ethnic groups and their relationship with food.
Montanari, Massimo. The Culture of Food. Carl Ipsen, tr. Oxford: Blackwell,
1994. A history of medieval foodways from a leader in the field.
———. Food Is Culture. Albert Sonnenfeld, tr. New York: Columbia
University Press, 2006. Thoughts about food by the preeminent medieval
food historian.
Mudry, Jessica J. Measured Meals: Nutrition in America. Albany: State
University of New York Press, 2009. Study of how calories came to dominate
nutritional theory in the 20th century.
Murray, Sarah. Moveable Feasts: From Ancient Rome to the 21st Century, the
Incredible Journeys of the Food We Eat. New York: St. Martin’s, 2007. The
history of food transport.
Norton, Marcy. Sacred Gifts, Profane Pleasures: A History of Tobacco and
Chocolate in the Atlantic World. Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 2008.
About the massive historical impact of two New World products.
Bibliography
Oddy, Derek J. From Plain Fare to Fusion Food: British Diet from the 1890s
to the 1900s. Woodbridge: Boydell, 2003. A history that parallels the U.S.
narrative about food.
Oddy, Derek J., Peter Atkins, and Virginie Amilien, eds. The Rise of Obesity
in Europe: A Twentieth-Century Food History. Farnham, Surrey: Ashgate,
2009. Essays on the impact of the modern food industry, nutritional theory,
and social change on obesity.
Oliver, Sandra L. Food in Colonial and Federal America. Westport, CT:
Greenwood, 2005. Fine survey of early American cooking.
280
Offer, Avner. Epidemics of Abundance: Overeating and Slimming in the
USA and Britain Since the 1950s. Oxford, Oxford University Press, 1998.
Examines our strange attitudes toward food; out of print.
Opie, Frederick Douglass. Hog and Hominy: Soul Food from Africa to
America. New York: Columbia University Press, 2010. A study of the
connections between African and U.S. foodways.
Ortiz de Montellano, Bernard R. Aztec Medicine, Health, and Nutrition.
New Brunswick, NJ: Rutgers University Press, 1990. The only full
account from the Aztec perspective; argues for indigenous traditions over
Spanish influences.
Palmatier, Robert Allen. Food: A Dictionary of Literal and Nonliteral Terms.
Westport, CT: Greenwood, 2000. Good reference work for food terminology.
Relevant to all lectures.
Paston-Williams, Sara. The Art of Dining. London: The National Trust, 1993.
Explains table settings and accoutrements used while eating.
Pendergast, Mark. Uncommon Grounds: The History of Coffee and How It
Transformed Our World. New York: Basic, 1999. Great history of coffee and
how it influences our lives and the world economy.
Perry, Charles, tr. A Baghdad Cookery Book. Totnes, Devon, England: Prospect
Books, 2005. A medieval Persian cookbook replete with cooking instructions.
Pilcher, Jeffrey M. Food in World History. New York: Routledge, 2006.
Excellent brief overview; geared toward the classroom.
———. Que Vivan los Tamales! Food and the Making of Mexican Identity.
Albuquerque, NM: University of New Mexico Press, 1998. The classic food
history of modern Mexico.
———. The Sausage Rebellion: Public Health, Private Enterprise, and
Meat in Mexico City, 1890–1917. Albuquerque: University of New Mexico
281
Press, 2006. A fascinating counterpart to the American story of regulation
and the food industries.
Pillsbury, Richard. No Foreign Food: The American Diet in Time and Place.
Boulder, CO: Westview Press, 1998. History of American taste and the
influence of immigrants.
Pleij, Herman. Dreaming of Cockaigne. New York: Columbia University
Press, 2001. About medieval food fantasies.
Pollan, Michael. The Botany of Desire: A Plant’s-Eye View of the World.
New York: Random House, 2001. Small chapter histories of the way certain
plants got humans to do their bidding.
———. The Omnivore’s Dilemma. New York: Penguin, 2006. Of remarkable
importance in bringing food issues to the public attention.
Pouncy, Carolyn Johnston, tr. The Domostroy: Rules for Russian Households
in the Time of Ivan the Terrible. Ithaca: Cornell, 1994. Social history of 16thcentury Russia covering food, drink, and much else.
Preece, Rod. Sins of the Flesh: A History of Ethical Vegetarian Thought.
Vancouver: University of British Columbia Press, 2008. Interesting history
of the influence of philosophy on vegetarianism.
Randolf, Mary. The Virginia Housewife. Columbia: University of South
Carolina Press, 1984. Facsimile of the 1824 edition, reveals the roots of
Southern cooking from an elite white perspective.
Bibliography
Rath, Eric, and Stephanie Assmann, eds. Japanese Foodways Past and
Present. Urbana: University of Illinois Press, 2010. Essay collection
covering early modern and modern periods.
Rath, Eric. Food and Fantasy in Early Modern Japan. Berkeley: University
of California Press, 2010. One of the few focused studies of this period
and place.
282
Reader, John. Potato: A History of the Propitious Esculent. New Haven, CT:
Yale University Press, 2009. One of many engaging histories of the potato.
Riley, Gillian. Italian Food. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2007. Detailed
encyclopedic coverage written with verve and humor.
Rosenblum, Mort. Olives. New York: North Point, 1996. Fun history of the
olive industry and all of the interesting people who work in it.
Sack, Daniel. Whitebread Protestants: Food and Religion in American
Culture. New York: Palgrave, 2000. Study of why Americans’ relationship to
food is so fraught with guilt.
Santanach, Joan, ed. The Book of Sent Soví: Medieval Recipes from
Catalonia. Robin Vogelzang, tr. Barcelona: Barcino Tamesis, 2008. A
fantastic medieval cookbook now translated into English.
Santich, Barbara. The Original Mediterranean Cuisine. Chicago: Chicago
Review Press, 1995. Excellent translations and commentary on medieval
and Renaissance recipes.
Salaman, Redcliffe N. The History and Social Influence of the Potato.
Cambridge, MA: Cambridge University Press, 1985. Reprint of the classic
1949 book, the first single-subject food history written.
Scappi, Bartolomeo. Opera. Terence Scully, tr. Toronto: University of
Toronto Press, 2008. English translation of the most important cookbook of
the Renaissance era.
Schaefer, Edward H. The Golden Peaches of Samarkand. Berkeley:
University of California Press, 1985. The story of exotic goods brought to
Tang-dynasty China.
Schivelbusch, Wolfgang. Tastes of Paradise: A Social History of Spices,
Stimulants, and Intoxicants. David Jacobson, tr. New York: Pantheon, 1992.
Sociological explanation of why capitalists drink coffee and Catholics drink
chocolate. Thought provoking and insightful.
283
Schlosser, Eric. Fast Food Nation. Boston: Houghton Mifflin, 2001. Modern
exposé of the fast-food industry and its impact on health, labor, etc.
Schwartz, Hillel. Never Satisfied: A Cultural History of Diets, Fantasies,
and Fat. New York: Anchor, 1986. Detailed survey of the dieting obsession.
Scully, Terence. The Art of Cookery in the Middle Ages. Woodbridge:
Boydell, 1995. Fine overview focusing on medieval cooking.
Scully, Terence, ed. Viandier of Taillevent. Ottawa, Canada: University of
Ottawa Press, 1988. The best medieval French cookbook.
Serventi, Silvano, and Francoise Sabban. Pasta. New York: Columbia
University Press, 2002. History of the origins of pasta, mostly about Europe.
Shapiro, Laura. Perfection Salad: Women and Cooking at the Turn of the
Century. New York: Farrar, Straus, and Girous, 1986. Groundbreaking study
of food and women that spurred on much research since.
Shaw, Teresa M. The Burden of the Flesh: Fasting and Sexuality in Early
Christianity. Minneapolis: Fortress Press, 1998. The best account of why
early theologians recommended fasting.
Siegers, Yves, Jan Bieleman, and Erik Buyst, eds. Exploring the Food
Chain: Food Production and Food Processing in Western Europe, 1850–
1990. Turnhout, Belgium: Brepols, 2009. New and useful perspectives on
the growth of the food industry.
Bibliography
Sim, Alison. Food and Feast in Tudor England. New York: St. Martin’s
Press, 1997. Colorful account of 16th-century elite meals.
Simmons, Amelia. American Cookery. Bedford, MA: Applewood, 1996.
Facsimile of the second 1797 edition of the first American cookbook.
Simoons, Frederick J. Eat Not This Flesh. Madison: University of Wisconsin
Press, 1994. An anthropological account of food taboos, especially
interesting about Judaism and Hinduism.
284
———. Food in China: A Cultural and Historical Inquiry. Boca Raton,
FL: CRC Press, 1991. Ingredient-by-ingredient analysis with an eye to
historical development.
Smith, Andrew F. American Tuna. Berkeley: University of California Press,
2012. Truly surprising story of the rise and probably fall of the industry.
———. Eating History. New York: Columbia University Press, 2009.
Concise chapters on revolutionary moments in history from the perspective
of food. Relevant for the entire course.
———. Fast Food and Junk Food: An Encyclopedia of What We Love to
Eat. Santa Barbara, CA: Greenwood, 2012. Everything you wanted to know
about the subject in succinct entries.
———. Peanuts. Urbana: University of Illinois Press, 2002. A great story of
how the meaning of peanuts and who eats them changes over time.
Smith, David F., and Jim Phillips, eds. Food, Science, Policy, and Regulation
in the Twentieth Century: International and Comparative Perspectives.
London: Routledge, 2000. Essays on the fascinating interaction of
government, scientists, and the food industry.
Smith, David F., ed. Nutrition in Britain: Science, Scientists, and Politics in
the Twentieth Century. London: Routledge, 1995. Essays on the politics of
nutritional theory.
Smith, E. The Compleat Housewife. London: Studio Editions, 1994. The
best 18th-century English cookbook; well known in the American colonies
as well.
Sokolov, Raymond. Why We Eat What We Eat. New York: Touchstone, 1993.
The gastronomic impact of Columbus’s discovery of the New World.
Soyer, Alexis. A Shilling Cookery for the People. Whistable: Pryor
Publications, 1999. Facsimile of the 1860 classic.
285
Spang, Rebecca. The Invention of the Restaurant: Paris and Modern
Gastronomic Culture. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 2000.
Excellent study of how restaurants developed in the West.
Spencer, Colin. British Food. London: Grub Street, 2002. Massive,
sweeping account of the topic by an excellent writer. Relevant for all lectures
on England.
———. The Heretic’s Feast: A History of Vegetarianism. Hanover:
University Press of New England, 1995. The best overview of vegetarianism
since ancient times.
Stearns, Peter N. Fat History: Bodies and Beauty in the Modern West. New
York: New York University Press, 1997. The classic history of attitudes
toward obesity and how they change.
Strong, Roy. Feast: A History of Grand Eating. London: Jonathan Cape,
2002. An art historian turns his attention to food with marvelous results.
Relevant for all lectures.
Stuart, Tristram. The Bloodless Revolution: A Cultural History of
Vegetarianism from 1600 to the Present. New York: HarperPress, 2006.
Quirky, with unsubstantiated conclusions, but thought provoking.
Symonds, Michael. History of Cooks and Cooking. Urbana: University of
Illinois Press, 2000. Broad history of the profession told with grace. Relevant
for all lectures.
Bibliography
Swislocki, Mark. Culinary Nostalgia: Regional Food Culture and the Urban
Experience in Shanghai. Stanford: Stanford University Press, 2009. The
history of Shanghai and its unique products from ancient times to the present.
Teuteberg, Hans Jürgen, ed. European Food History: A Research Review.
Leicester: Leicester University Press, 1992. State of the field overview.
286
Theophano, Janet. Eat My Words: Reading Women’s Lives through the
Cookbooks They Wrote. New York: Palgrave, 2002. Feminist history of
women cookbook authors.
Thirsk, Joan. Food in Early Modern England: Phases, Fads, Fashions,
1500–1760. London: Hambledon Continuum, 2006. Leading historian of
agriculture turns to food.
This, Hervé. Molecular Gastronomy: Exploring the Science of Flavor. New
York: Columbia University Press, 2008. A book fit for foodies, this addresses
common, conventional gastronomic practices.
Trubeck, Amy. How the French Invented the Culinary Profession. Philadelphia:
University of Pennsylvania Press, 2000. Superb study of its topic.
Turner, Jack. Spice: The History of a Temptation. New York: Knopf, 2004.
One among several good histories of the spice trade.
Unger, Richard W. Beer in the Middle Ages and the Renaissance.
Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press, 2004. Superb study of the
changes in beer production and distribution on the threshold of the early
modern era.
Valenze, Deborah. Milk: A Local and Global History. New Haven, CT:
Yale University Press, 2011. Social historian turns to the single subject with
broad-ranging insights.
Van Winter, Johanna Maria. Spices and Comfits: Collected Papers on
Medieval Food. Totnes, Devon, England: Prospect, 2007. Essays on various
facets of medieval taste.
Vega, Cesar, Job Ubbink, and Erik van van der Linden, eds. The Kitchen as
Laboratory: Reflections on the Science of Food and Cooking. New York:
Columbia University Press, 2012. Molecular gastronomy comes of age
in this excellent collection, whose many chapters include spherification,
stretchy textures, maximizing flavor, and the perfect cookie dough.
287
Vernon, James. Hunger: A Modern History. Cambridge, MA: Harvard
University Press, 2007. The history of how human actions cause famines.
Vileisis, Anne. Kitchen Literacy. Washington, DC: Island Press, 2008. Not
about the kitchen per se, this addresses how little we know about where our
food comes from, how it’s processed, and what happens to it.
Visser, Margaret. Much Depends on Dinner: The Extraordinary History and
Mythology, Allure and Obsession, Perils and Taboos, of an Ordinary Meal.
New York: Grove, 1986. Very useful anthropological study of manners.
Warde, Alan. Consumption, Food, and Taste: Culinary Antinomies and
Commodity Culture. London: Sage, 1997. A very important sociological
view of modern food preferences.
Warman, Arturo. Corn and Capitalism: How A Botanical Bastard Grew to
Global Dominance. Nancy L. Westrate, tr. Chapel Hill: University of North
Carolina Press, 2003. Explains the dominance of corn in the food industry.
Watts, Sydney. Meat Matters: Butchers, Politics, and Market Culture in
Eighteenth-Century Paris. Rochester, NY: University of Rochester Press,
2006. Fine study of the Enlightenment meat market.
Wheaton, Barbara Ketchum. Savoring the Past: The French Kitchen
and Table from 1300 to 1789. New York: Simon and Schuster, 1983. A
groundbreaking culinary history by one of the creators of the field.
Bibliography
Willan, Anne. Great Cooks and Their Recipes. London: Pavilion, 2000.
Hands-on history of many chefs mentioned throughout the course.
Wilson, Bee. Swindled: The Dark History of Food Fraud, from Poisoned
Candy to Counterfeit Coffee. Princeton: Princeton University Press, 2008.
Gripping read about the crimes committed by the food industries.
Wilson, C. Anne. Food and Drink in Britain: From the Stone Age to the
19th Century. Chicago: Academy Chicago Publishers, 1991 [1973]. Detailed
288
study of English food from prehistory through the Victorian era. Relevant to
all lectures about England.
Witt, Doris. Black Hunger. Minneapolis: University of Minnesota Press,
1999. Studies African American cuisine in the United States; highly
theoretical and thought provoking.
Woloson, Wendy. Refined Tastes. Baltimore, MD: Johns Hopkins, 2002.
Study of the candy industries.
Woolgar, C. M. The Great Household in Late Medieval England. New
Haven, CT: Yale, 1999. Explains the food and function of elite dining.
Wrangham, Richard. Catching Fire: How Cooking Made Us Human. New
York: Basic Books, 2009. Excellent study of the role cooking played in
human evolution; still awaits archaeological evidence of cooking as early as
the author claims.
Young, Carolin C. Apples of Gold in Settings of Silver. New York: Simon
and Schuster, 2002. Food history with careful attention to tableware.
Zaouali, Lilia. Medieval Cuisine of the Islamic World. Berkeley: University
of California Press, 2007. Useful overview of Middle Eastern cooking’s
roots; however, redacted recipes are regrettable.
Ziegelman, Jane. 97 Orchard. New York: HarperCollins, 2010. Account of
several immigrant families’ foodways while living in a New York tenement.
Zubaida, Sami, and Richard Tapper. A Taste of Thyme. London: Taurus
Parke, 2000. Essays on food in the Middle East.
Zuckerman, Larry. Potato. New York: North Point 1998. Another nice potato
book.
Zweiniger-Bargielowska, Ina, Rachel Duffett, and Alain Drouard, eds. Food
and War in Twentieth-Century Europe. Farnham, Surrey, England: Ashgate,
289
2011. Comparative essays about military and civilian provisioning and how
food changed during the world wars.
Bibliography
Internet Resource
FoodTimeline.org. http://www.foodtimeline.org/foodfaqindex.html. Offers a
very thorough timeline that tracks both when each food came into use and
years when specific dishes and recipes appeared, with hyperlinks to more
detailed information about many of the entries also gathered together in an
alphabetical “Food History A–Z.”
290
Notes